hadith book logo

HADITH.One

HADITH.One

English

Support

Reading Settings

English

System

Select Arabic Font

Kfgq Hafs

Select Translation Font

Kalpurush

22
17

General Settings

Show Arabic

Show Translation

Show Reference

Hadith Split View


Be a Part of this Sadaqa Jariah

Help us gift a modern, ad-free Islamic application for the Muslim Ummah. Your donation will be recorded as Sadaqah Jariyah in your book of deeds, In Sha Allah.

Support
hadith book logo

Musnad Ahmed

2. Musnad Umar ibn Khattab

ู…ุณู†ุฏ ุงุญู…ุฏ

82

Sahih because of corroborating evidence]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุงููุนู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‡ูŽู„ู’ ูŠูŽู†ูŽุงู…ู ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุฌูู†ูุจูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ูˆูŽูŠูŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽู‡ู ู„ูู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ููˆุจูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุงููุนู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูุซู’ู„ูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated from Ibn "Umar that

"Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ asked the Prophet (๏ทบ): Can one of us sleep if he is junub? He said: "Yes, if he does wudooโ€™ as for prayer."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 235
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 235

83

Sahih (Darussalam) [

It was narrated from Ibn "Umar that

"Umar asked the Prophet (๏ทบ)... a similar hadeeth.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 236
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 236

84

Sahih (Darussalam) [
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุงููุนู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽู‰ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุณูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุงู„ููƒู ูŠูŽู…ู’ุณูŽุญู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ู„ูŽุชูŽูู’ุนูŽู„ููˆู†ูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุนู’ุฏูŒ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ููŽุงุฌู’ุชูŽู…ูŽุนูŽุง ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุนู’ุฏูŒ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ุฃูŽูู’ุชู ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎููŠ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุญู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ูˆูŽู†ูŽุญู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุนูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูู†ูŽุง ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู…ู’ุณูŽุญู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฎูููŽุงููู†ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุงุฆูุทู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุจูŽูˆู’ู„ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุงุฆูุทู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุจูŽูˆู’ู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุงููุนูŒ ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูŠูŽู…ู’ุณูŽุญู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู…ูŽุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽุนู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ูŠููˆูŽู‚ู‘ูุชู ู„ูุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ู’ุชู‹ุง ููŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซู’ุชู ุจูู‡ู ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠู‡ู ุฃูŽูŠู‘ููˆุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุงููุนู ู…ูุซู’ู„ูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated that Nafiสผ said:

Ibn "Umar saw Sa"d bin Malik wiping over his leather slippers. Ibn สผUmar said: Is it you doing this? Sa"d said: Yes. They both went to โ€˜Umar and Sa"d said to โ€˜Umar, Give my brother"s son a fatwa with regard to wiping over leather slippers. "Umar said, When we were with our Prophet (๏ทบ) we used to wipe over our leather slippers. Ibn "Umar said: Even if that is after one has defecated and urinated? He said: Yes, even if that is after one has defecated and urinated. Nafiสผ said: After that, Ibn โ€˜Umar would wipe over them and not take them off, and he did not give a time limit for that. I told that to Ma"mar and he said: Ayyoob told me something similar from Nafi".
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 237
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 237

85

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2134) and Muslim (1586)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุงู„ููƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ุณู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏูŽุซูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽุฑูŽูู’ุชู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูู‚ู‹ุง ุจูุฐูŽู‡ูŽุจู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุธูุฑู’ู†ููŠ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุฃู’ุชููŠูŽู†ูŽุง ุฎูŽุงุฒูู†ูู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุงุจูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุณูŽู…ูุนูŽู‡ูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุง ุชูููŽุงุฑูู‚ูู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽุณู’ุชูŽูˆู’ูููŠูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ุตูŽุฑู’ููŽู‡ู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุงู„ุฐู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุจู ุจูุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุฑูู‚ู ุฑูุจู‹ุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ.

Malik bin Aws bin al-Hadathan said:

I exchanged some silver for gold with Talhah bin โ€˜Ubaidullah, and he said: Wait for me until our storekeeper comes from al-Ghabah, "Umar bin al-Khattab heard that and said: No, by Allah! Do not leave him until you take your exchange from him, for I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "Gold for silver is riba unless it is "here, take this" and "here, take this" [i.e., exchanged on the spot].โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 238
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 238

86

Sahih hadeeth
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุงุฑู’ุชูŽุฏู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูุฏู‘ูŽุฉู ูููŠ ุฒูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ูƒูŽูŠู’ููŽ ุชูู‚ูŽุงุชูู„ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูู…ูุฑู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูู‚ูŽุงุชูู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ููˆุง ู„ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‡ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ู„ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‡ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุตูŽู…ููˆุง ู…ูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฏูู…ูŽุงุกูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุจูุญูŽู‚ู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ูˆูŽุญูุณูŽุงุจูู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุฃูู‚ูŽุงุชูู„ูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ููŽุฑู‘ูŽู‚ูŽ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฒู‘ูŽูƒูŽุงุฉู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูŽูƒูŽุงุฉูŽ ุญูŽู‚ู‘ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู„ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ู…ูŽู†ูŽุนููˆู†ููŠ ุนูŽู†ูŽุงู‚ู‹ุง ูƒูŽุงู†ููˆุง ูŠูุคูŽุฏู‘ููˆู†ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุงุชูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุดูŽุฑูŽุญูŽ ุตูŽุฏู’ุฑูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู„ูู„ู’ู‚ูุชูŽุงู„ู ููŽุนูŽุฑูŽูู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู‚ู‘ู.

It was narrated that "Ubaidullah bin "Abdullah bin "Utbah said:

When the apostates apostatised at the time of Abu Bakr, โ€˜Umar said: How can you fight the people, O Abu Bakr, when the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œI have been commanded to fight the people until they say La ilaha illallah (There is no god but Allah), and whoever says La ilaha illallah, his wealth and his life are protected from me except in cases dictated by Islamic law, and his reckoning will be with Allah"? Abu Bakr said: By Allah, I will most certainly fight those who separate prayer and zakah, for zakah is what is due on wealth. By Allah, if they withhold from me a small she-goat that they used to give to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), I will certainly fight them for withholding it. "Umar bin al-Khattab said. By Allah, as soon as I saw that Allah had opened Abu Bakr"s heart to the idea of fighting, I knew that he was right.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 239
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 239

87

Sahih because of corroborating evidence; this isnad is da'eef
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุณู’ุฑูŽุงุฆููŠู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูู…ูŽุงูƒู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนููƒู’ุฑูู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ูููŠ ุฑูŽูƒู’ุจู ุฃูŽุณููŠุฑู ูููŠ ุบูŽุฒูŽุงุฉู ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุญูŽู„ูŽูู’ุชู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููŠ ููŽู†ูŽู‡ูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฎูŽู„ู’ูููŠ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุญู’ู„ููููˆุง ุจูุขุจูŽุงุฆููƒูู…ู’ ููŽุงู„ู’ุชูŽููŽุชู‘ู ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุจูุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ.

It was narrated that Ibn โ€˜Abbas said; โ€˜Umar said:

I was walking with a group of people during a campaign I went on with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) and I swore an oath, saying, No, by my father. A man behind me rebuked me for that and said: โ€œDo not swear by your fathers,โ€ I turned around and saw that it was the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 240
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 240

88

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al-Bukhari (6647) and Muslim (1646)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽู†ููŠ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุญู’ู„ููู ุจูุฃูŽุจููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ูŠูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุงูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุญู’ู„ููููˆุง ุจูุขุจูŽุงุฆููƒูู…ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุญูŽู„ูŽูู’ุชู ุจูู‡ูŽุง ุจูŽุนู’ุฏู ุฐูŽุงูƒูุฑู‹ุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุขุซูุฑู‹ุง.

It was narrated that สผUmar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) heard me swearing an oath by my father and said: โ€œAllah forbids you to swear by your fathers.โ€ โ€˜Umar said: By Allah, I never swore by my father after that, whether saying it myself or narrating what someone else had said.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 241
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 241

89

Sahih (Darussalam) [
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฎูŽู„ูŽูู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ููŠุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฎูŽุงู„ูุฏูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฎูŽุงู„ูุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุฎู‘ูŽุตูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑู ูููŠ ุฅูุตู’ุจูŽุนูŽูŠู’ู†ู.

It was narrated from สผUmar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ that:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) granted a concession allowing silk the width of two fingers.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 242
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 242

90

Sahih (Darussalam) [
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ุชู‘ูŽูŠู’ู…ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ููŽุฑู’ู‚ูŽุฏู ููŽูƒูŽุชูŽุจูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุจูุฃูŽุดู’ูŠูŽุงุกูŽ ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูููŠู…ูŽุง ูƒูŽุชูŽุจูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽู„ู’ุจูŽุณู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูู†ู’ูŠูŽุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽูŠู’ุณูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑูŽุฉู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ุดูŽูŠู’ุกูŒ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‡ูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุจูุฅูุตู’ุจูŽุนูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุจูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ูˆูุณู’ุทูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ููŽุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฒู’ุฑูŽุงุฑู ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽูŠูŽุงู„ูุณูŽุฉู ุญููŠู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽูŠูŽุงู„ูุณูŽุฉูŽ.

It was narrated that Abu "Uthman said:

We were with "Utbah bin Farqad and "Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ wrote to him about things he narrated from the Prophet (๏ทบ). Among the things he wrote was that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "No one wears silk in this world except one who will not wear it in the Hereafter, except this much," and he gestured with his two fingers, the forefinger and the middle finger. Abu "Uthman said: I thought this referred to the edging of the tayalisah (a shawl-like garment) when we first saw the tayalisah.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 243
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 243

91

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (686)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฌู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุจูŽุงุจูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูู…ูŽูŠู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฅูู‚ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ [[[{ ุฅูู†ู’ ุฎููู’ุชูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽูู’ุชูู†ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ูƒูŽููŽุฑููˆุง }]]] ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฐูŽู‡ูŽุจูŽ ุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽุฌูุจู’ุชู ู…ูู…ู‘ูŽุง ุนูŽุฌูุจู’ุชูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ุชู ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู„ูุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุฉูŒ ุชูŽุตูŽุฏู‘ูŽู‚ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจูู‡ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูู…ู’ ููŽุงู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ููˆุง ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุชูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฌู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated that Ya"la bin Umayyah said:

I said to "Umar bin al-Khattab. People are shortening the prayer today, and Allah says: โ€œIf you fear that the disbelievers may put you in trial (attack you)" [an-Nisa" 4:101). But that time [i.e., time of fear] has gone, He said: I wondered the same thing as you are wondering, and I asked the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) about that. He said: "It is a charity that Allah has bestowed upon you, so accept His charity.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 244
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 244

92

Sahih (Darussalam) [

"Abdur-Razzaq told us, Ibn Juraij told us

I heard "Abdur-Rahman bin โ€˜Abdullah bin Abi โ€˜Ammar narrate... and he mentioned [the same report].
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 245
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 245

93

Hasan
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽุฑููˆุจูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุขุฎูุฑูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ู ุขูŠูŽุฉู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูุจูŽุง ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูุจูุถูŽ ูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูููŽุณู‘ูุฑู’ู‡ูŽุง ููŽุฏูŽุนููˆุง ุงู„ุฑู‘ูุจูŽุง ูˆูŽุงู„ุฑู‘ููŠุจูŽุฉูŽ.

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab said:

The last thing to be revealed was the verse on riba, but the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) passed away and did not discuss it with us. So give up riba and doubtful things.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 246
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 246

94

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al-Bukhari (1292) and Muslim (927)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุจู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽูŠู‘ูุชู ูŠูุนูŽุฐู‘ูŽุจู ูููŠ ู‚ูŽุจู’ุฑูู‡ู ุจูุงู„ู†ู‘ููŠูŽุงุญูŽุฉู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู.

It was narrated from สผUmar that:

The Prophet (๏ทบ) said: "The deceased is tormented in his grave because of the wailing for him."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 247
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 247

95

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ู†ูŽุงููุนูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูุนูŽุฐู‘ูŽุจู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽูŠู‘ูุชู ุจูุจููƒูŽุงุกู ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ูู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู.

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar that:

The Prophet (๏ทบ) said: โ€œThe deceased is tormented because of his family"s crying for him.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 248
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 248

96

Sahih, al-Bukhari (2462) and Muslim (1691)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุจู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅููŠู‘ูŽุงูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽู‡ู’ู„ููƒููˆุง ุนูŽู†ู’ ุขูŠูŽุฉู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌู’ู…ู ู„ูŽุง ู†ูŽุฌูุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ูููŠ ูƒูุชูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฌูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฌูŽู…ู’ู†ูŽุง.

It was narrated that Yahya said:

I heard Sa"eed bin al-Musayyab (say) that "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ ) said: Beware of neglecting the verse of stoning, lest someone say, We do not find two hadd punishments in the Book of Allah, for I saw the Prophet (๏ทบ) stone [adulterers] and we stoned [adulterers] too.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 249
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 249

97

lts isnad is Sahih, al-Bukhari (4483).
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฏูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ูŽุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุงููŽู‚ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ูููŠ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ูˆูŽูˆูŽุงููŽู‚ูŽู†ููŠ ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ูููŠ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุงุชู‘ูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ุชูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ู ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ู…ูุตูŽู„ู‘ู‹ู‰ ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู [[[{ ูˆูŽุงุชู‘ูŽุฎูุฐููˆุง ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ู ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ู…ูุตูŽู„ู‘ู‹ู‰ }]]] ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูŽ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ููŽุงุฌูุฑู ููŽู„ูŽูˆู’ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑู’ุชูŽ ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ุจูุงู„ู’ุญูุฌูŽุงุจู ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุขูŠูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูุฌูŽุงุจู ูˆูŽุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽู†ููŠ ู…ูุนูŽุงุชูŽุจูŽุฉู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงู… ุจูŽุนู’ุถูŽ ู†ูุณูŽุงุฆูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ููŽุฌูŽุนูŽู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุณู’ุชูŽู‚ู’ุฑููŠู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏูŽุฉู‹ ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏูŽุฉู‹ ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุฆูู†ู’ ุงู†ู’ุชูŽู‡ูŽูŠู’ุชูู†ู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู„ูŽูŠูุจูŽุฏู‘ูู„ูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽู‡ู ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุจูŽุนู’ุถู ู†ูุณูŽุงุฆูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ูŠูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ูููŠ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนูุธู ู†ูุณูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ุชูŽุนูุธูู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ [[[{ ุนูŽุณูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุจู‘ูู‡ู ุฅูู†ู’ ุทูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‚ูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุจู’ุฏูู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงุฌู‹ุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ }]]].

It was narrated that Anas said:

"Umar said: My opinion coincided with that of my Lord in three matters and my Lord confirmed my opinion in three matters. I said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), why don"t you take Maqam Ibraheem as a place of prayer? Then Allah revealed the words: โ€œAnd take you (people) the Maqam (place) of Ibraheem (Abraham) [or the stone on which Ibraheem (Abraham) to stood while he was building the Ka"bah] as a place of prayerโ€ [al-Baqarah 2:125]. And I said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), both righteous and immoral people enter upon you; why don"t you tell the Mothers of the Believers to observe hijab? Then Allah revealed the verse of hijab. And I heard that the Prophet (๏ทบ) had rebuked some of his wives, so I sought permission to speak to the Mothers of the Believers, then I entered upon them and said to each one of them: By Allah, either you stop, or Allah will give His Messenger (wives) who are better than you. I went to one of his wives and she said: O โ€˜Umar, don"t you think that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) is able to exhort his wives? Why are you exhorting them? Then Allah revealed the words. It may be if he divorced you (all) that his Lord will give him instead of you, wives better than you" [at-Tahreem 66:5]
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 250
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 250

98

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al-Bukhari (5828) and Muslim (2069)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฐูุจู’ูŠูŽุงู†ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽุง ุชูู„ู’ุจูุณููˆุง ู†ูุณูŽุงุกูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุจูุณูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูู†ู’ูŠูŽุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽู„ู’ุจูŽุณู’ู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑูŽุฉู ูˆ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ ุนูู†ู’ุฏูู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽู„ู’ุจูŽุณู’ู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑูŽุฉู ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ [[[{ ูˆูŽู„ูุจูŽุงุณูู‡ูู…ู’ ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑูŒ }]]].

Abu Dhibyan told us:

I heard โ€˜Abdullah bin az-Zubair say: Do not let your women wear silk, for I heard "Umar narrate from the Prophet (๏ทบ) that he said: "Whoever wears silk in this world will not wear it in the Hereafter." And "Abdullah bin az-Zubair added his own words: And whoever does not wear it in the Hereafter will not enter Paradise. Allah says: โ€œand their garments therein will be of silk" [Fatir 35:33].
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 251
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 251

99

Sahih (Darussalam) when all its isnads are taken together.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฅูุณู’ู…ูŽุงุนููŠู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑูŒ ูˆ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุณู’ู…ูŽุงุนููŠู„ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฎูŽุงู„ูุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุนู’ุจููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจูุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ู…ูŽุนู’ู†ูŽุงู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจูุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ููŽุฑูŽุขู‡ู ู…ูู‡ู’ุชูŽู…ู‘ู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุนูŽู„ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุณูŽุงุกูŽูƒูŽ ุฅูู…ูŽุงุฑูŽุฉู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู‘ููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู„ูŽุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ูƒูŽู„ูู…ูŽุฉู‹ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ูู‡ูŽุง ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ุชูู‡ู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ู†ููˆุฑู‹ุง ูููŠ ุตูŽุญููŠููŽุชูู‡ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฑูŽูˆู’ุญู‹ุง ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽูˆู’ุชู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูุฎู’ุจูุฑููƒูŽ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ู‡ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูู…ูŽุฉู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ุฃูŽุฑูŽุงุฏูŽ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุดูŽู‡ูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‡ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ูƒูุดูููŽ ุนูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุบูุทูŽุงุกูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ู’ุชูŽ ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุนูŽู„ูู…ูŽ ูƒูŽู„ูู…ูŽุฉู‹ ู‡ููŠูŽ ุฃูŽูู’ุถูŽู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ู„ูŽุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุจูู‡ูŽุง.

It was narrated that ash-Sha"bi said:

"Umar passed by Talhah, and he narrated a similar report. He said: โ€˜Umar passed by Talhah and saw him looking worried. He said: Perhaps you are upset because your cousin was appointed (as caliph)? - referring to Abu Bakr. He said: No, but by Allah, I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "I know a word which, if a man says it when he is dying, it will be light in the record of his deeds, or he will find comfort in it at the time of death." โ€˜Umar said: I will tell you of it; it is the word that he wanted his paternal uncle to say, the testimony that there is no god but Allah. He said: It is as if a great burden has been lifted from me. He said: You are right. If he had known anything better that it, he would have instructed him to say it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 252
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 252

100

Sahih (Darussalam) [.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฌู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุชููŠู‚ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุจูŽุงุจูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูู…ูŽูŠู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุทููู’ุชู ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ููƒู’ู†ู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ูŠูŽู„ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุงุจูŽ ู…ูู…ู‘ูŽุง ูŠูŽู„ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ุชู ุจููŠูŽุฏูู‡ู ู„ููŠูŽุณู’ุชูŽู„ูู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ุทููู’ุชูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุจูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‡ูŽู„ู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุณู’ุชูŽู„ูู…ูู‡ู ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุงู†ู’ููุฐู’ ุนูŽู†ู’ูƒูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ูููŠ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูุณู’ูˆูŽุฉู‹ ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŽุฉู‹.

lt was narrated that Ya"la bin Umayyah said:

l did tawaf with "Umar bin al-Khattab, and when he was at the corner which is next to the door after the [Black] Stone, I took his hand in order to touch (the corner). He said. Didn"t you do tawaf with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ)? I said: Yes. He said: Did you see him touch it? I said: No. He said: Then forget about it, for in the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) you have a good example.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 253
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 253

101

Sahih (Darussalam) [.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูŽู‚ููŠู‚ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุนู’ุจูŽุฏู ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽู†ููŠ ุชูŽุบู’ู„ูุจูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ู†ูŽุตู’ุฑูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ููŽุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ู’ุชู ููŽุงุฌู’ุชูŽู‡ูŽุฏู’ุชู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ุขู„ู ููŽุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ูŽู„ู’ุชู ุจูุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉู ููŽู…ูŽุฑูŽุฑู’ุชู ุจูุงู„ู’ุนูุฐูŽูŠู’ุจู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุณูŽู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุตููˆุญูŽุงู†ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฌูŽู…ููŠุนู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽุงุญูุจูู‡ู ุฏูŽุนู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุฃูŽุถูŽู„ู‘ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽุนููŠุฑูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุจูŽุนููŠุฑููŠ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู†ูู‚ููŠ ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ุชู ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ูŽุง ุดูŽูŠู’ุฆู‹ุง ู‡ูุฏููŠุชูŽ ู„ูุณูู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ููƒูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ.

As-Subayy bin Ma"bad was a man from (the tribe of) Banu Taghlib, He said:

I was a Christian, then I became Muslim. I thought long and hard, and decided to enter ihram for Hajj and "Umrah. I passed by Salman bin Rabee"ah and Zaid bin Soohan in al-"Udhaib, and one of them said: Are you doing both of them? His companion said to him. Let him be; he is more misguided than his came! He [as-Subayy] said: It was as if my camel was on my shoulders [i.e., because he was so upset by their words]. I went to โ€˜Umar and told him about that. โ€˜Umar said to me: They did not say anything (that matters); you have been guided to the Sunnah of your Prophet (๏ทบ).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 254
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 254

102

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2042) and Muslim(1656)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ู†ูŽุงููุนูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู†ูŽุฐูŽุฑู’ุชู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุงู‡ูู„ููŠู‘ูŽุฉู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุนู’ุชูŽูƒูููŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑูŽุงู…ู ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุฉู‹ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽูˆู’ูู ุจูู†ูŽุฐู’ุฑููƒูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽู†ู’ุตููˆุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูˆูŽุงุฆูู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุตูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุนู’ุจูŽุฏู ุงู„ุชู‘ูŽุบู’ู„ูุจููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ุญูŽุฏููŠุซูŽ ุนูŽู‡ู’ุฏู ุจูู†ูŽุตู’ุฑูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ูŽุฉู ููŽุฃูŽุฑูŽุฏู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุฌูู‡ูŽุงุฏูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ููŠ ูŠูู‚ูŽุงู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ู ู‡ูุฏูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุจูุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ู ููŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽู†ู’ุชู ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated from สผUmar that he said:

O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), I vowed during the jahiliyyah to observe iโ€™tikaf for one night in al-Masjid al-Haram. He said to him: โ€œFulfil your vow.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 255
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 255

103

Sahih (Darussalam) [.

It was narrated that Subayy bin Ma"bad al-Taghlibi said:

I had recently converted from Christianity and I wanted to go for jihad or for Hajj, I went to a man of my people whose name was Hudaim, and asked him, and he told me to do Hajj, So I did qiran (Hajj and "Umrah together).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 256
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 256

104

Sahih Hadeeth.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒููŠุนูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฅููŠูŽุงู…ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽููŽุฑู ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุถู’ุญูŽู‰ ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ู’ููุทู’ุฑู ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ู’ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽุงู†ู ุชูŽู…ูŽุงู…ูŒ ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุตู’ุฑู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู„ูุณูŽุงู†ู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฒูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏูŒ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ุฃูุฑูŽุงู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุฌู’ู‡ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽูƒู‘ู ูˆ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ู‡ูŽุงุฑููˆู†ูŽ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู.

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar said:

The prayer when travelling is two rak"ahs, the prayer of [Eid] ul-Adha is two rak"ahs, the prayer of [Eid] ul-Fitr is two rak"ahs and the prayer of Jumu"ah is two rak"ahs, complete not shortened, as stated by Muhammad (๏ทบ), Sufyan said: On one occasion Zubaid said: I think he was narrating it from สผUmar. โ€˜Abdur-Rahman said: Without a doubt. Yazeed - i.e., bin Haroon bin Abi Laila - said: l heard "Umar.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 257
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 257

105

Sahih (Darussalam) and its isnad is Hasan, al-Bukhari (1490) and Muslim (1620)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒููŠุนูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽุงู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏูŽ ููŽุฑูŽุณู‹ุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุญูŽู…ูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ูููŠ ุณูŽุจููŠู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูุจูŽุงุนู ูููŠ ุงู„ุณู‘ููˆู‚ู ููŽุฃูŽุฑูŽุงุฏูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุดู’ุชูŽุฑููŠูŽู‡ูŽุง ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู†ูŽู‡ูŽุงู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุนููˆุฏูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ูููŠ ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุชููƒูŽ.

It was narrated from Zaid bin Aslam from his father from "Umar that:

He found a horse that he had given to someone (for jihad) for the sake of Allah being offered for sale in the marketplace, and he wanted to buy it. He asked the Prophet (๏ทบ) [about that] and he told him not to do that and said: โ€œDo not take back your charity."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 258
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 258

106

Sahih (Darussalam) [.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒููŠุนูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฎูŽุงู„ูุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุจููŠูŽุฏูู‡ู ุนูŽุณููŠุจู ู†ูŽุฎู’ู„ู ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ูŠูุฌู’ู„ูุณู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุงุณู’ู…ูŽุนููˆุง ู„ูู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ู ุฎูŽู„ููŠููŽุฉู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ู‹ู‰ ู„ูุฃูŽุจููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูู‚ูŽุงู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ู ุดูŽุฏููŠุฏูŒ ุจูุตูŽุญููŠููŽุฉู ููŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽู‡ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงุณู’ู…ูŽุนููˆุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽุทููŠุนููˆุง ู„ูู…ูŽุง ูููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽุญููŠููŽุฉู ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ุชููƒูู…ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณูŒ ููŽุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูู†ู’ุจูŽุฑู.

It was narrated that Qais said:

I saw "Umar with a leafless palm branch in his hand, and he was telling the people to sit down, saying: Listen to the words of the successor of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ). A freed slave of Abu Bakr, whose name was Shadeed, brought the document and read it to the people, He said: Abu Bakr says: Listen to and obey what is in this document, for by Allah I am very sincere towards you, Qais said: And I saw "Umar after that on the minbar.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 259
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 259

107

Sahih hadeeth.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุคูŽู…ู‘ูŽู„ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ุณู‘ูู„ูŽู…ููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠุฐู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุจููŠุฐู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฏู‘ูุจู‘ูŽุงุกู ููŽู„ูŽู‚ููŠุชู ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ูููŠู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุธูู†ู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุจููŠุฐู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฏู‘ูุจู‘ูŽุงุกู ุดูŽูƒู‘ูŽ ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู‚ููŠุชู ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุจููŠุฐู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฏู‘ูุจู‘ูŽุงุกู.

It was narrated that "Imran as-Sulami said:

I asked Ibn "Abbas about nabeedh, and he said: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade nabeedh made in earthenware jars and gourds, Then I met Ibn "Umar and asked him, and he told me - I think it was from โ€˜Umar - that the Prophet (๏ทบ) forbade nabeedh made in earthenware jars and gourds. Sufyan was not sure, Then I met Ibn az-Zubair and asked him, and he said: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade nabeedh made in earthenware jars and gourds.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 260
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 260

108

Da'if (Darussalam) [ because of the weakness of Abu Sinan.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุณูู†ูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุขุฏูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููŠ ู…ูŽุฑู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููŠ ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจูุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุงุจููŠูŽุฉู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุชู’ุญูŽ ุจูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู‚ู’ุฏูุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ููŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูู†ูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุขุฏูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ููƒูŽุนู’ุจู ุฃูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุชูุฑูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูุตูŽู„ู‘ููŠูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ุชูŽ ุนูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ุชูŽ ุฎูŽู„ู’ููŽ ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽุฎู’ุฑูŽุฉู ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฏู’ุณู ูƒูู„ู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู’ูƒูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุถูŽุงู‡ูŽูŠู’ุชูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏููŠู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู’ ุฃูุตูŽู„ู‘ููŠ ุญูŽูŠู’ุซู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุชูŽู‚ูŽุฏู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุจู’ู„ูŽุฉู ููŽุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽุจูŽุณูŽุทูŽ ุฑูุฏูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ููŽูƒูŽู†ูŽุณูŽ ุงู„ู’ูƒูู†ูŽุงุณูŽุฉูŽ ูููŠ ุฑูุฏูŽุงุฆูู‡ู ูˆูŽูƒูŽู†ูŽุณูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู.

It was narrated from Ubaid bin Adam, Abu Maryam and Abu Shu"aib that:

"Umar bin al-Khattab was in al-Jabiyah and he mentioned the conquest of Baitul-Maqdis (Jerusalem). Then Abu Salamah said: Abu Sinan told me, from "Ubaid bin Adam that he said: I heard "Umar bin al-Khattab say to Ka"b: Where do you think I should pray? He said: It you listen to me, you will pray behind the rock and all of al-Quds (Jerusalem) will be in front of you. "Umar said: You are suggesting something similar to the Jewish way; rather I shall pray where the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) prayed. He went forward to the qiblah and prayed, then he came and spread his upper garment and swept the place, collecting garbage in his upper garment, and the people swept it too.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 261
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 261

109

Sahih because of corroborating evidence]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู†ูุนูŽูŠู’ู…ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุงู„ููƒูŒ ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูุบู’ูˆูŽู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ููุถูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุฎูŽุนููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุชูŽูƒู’ูููŠูƒูŽ ุขูŠูŽุฉู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽูŠู’ูู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽุญูŽุจู‘ู ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ู„ููŠ ุญูู…ู’ุฑู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุนูŽู…ู.

lt was narrated that โ€˜Umar said:

I asked the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) about kalalah and he said: โ€œThe verse that was revealed in summer is sufficient for you." He said: Had I asked the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) about it, that would have been dearer to me than having red camels.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 262
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 262

110

Sahih (Darussalam) []
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฃูŽุญู’ู…ูŽุฏูŽ ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏููŠู†ูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุชูŽู‰ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูุตููŠุจูู†ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ูŽุงุจูŽุฉู ููŽุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุบู’ุณูู„ูŽ ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽูŠูŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽู‡ู ู„ูู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู.

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar that:

He went to the Prophet (๏ทบ) and said: Sometimes I become junub. He told him to wash his private parts and do wudooโ€™ as for prayer (i.e., then go to sleep, and do ghusl before Fajr).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 263
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 263

111

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1292) and Muslim (927)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงู…ูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุฒูŽุนูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูŠูุนูŽุฐู‘ูุจู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽูŠู‘ูุชูŽ ุจูุจููƒูŽุงุกู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูŠู‘ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ูƒูŽุฐูŽุจู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ูƒูŽุฐูŽุจูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ.

It was narrated that Qaza"ah said:

I said to Ibn โ€˜Umar: is the deceased tormented because of the weeping of this living one? He said: โ€˜Umar narrated to me from the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), and I did not lie when narrating from "Umar, and "Umar did not lie when narrating from the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 264
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 264

112

Sahih (Darussalam) [.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒููŠูŽุงุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุฑู’ุซูŽุนู ุนูŽู†ู ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุงุจู’ู†ู ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูุนู’ูููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุณู’ุนููˆุฏู ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ููŽุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ู‚ูุฑูŽุงุกูŽุชูŽู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽูƒูŽุนูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽุฌูŽุฏูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุณูŽู„ู’ ุชูุนู’ุทูŽู‡ู’ ุณูŽู„ู’ ุชูุนู’ุทูŽู‡ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽุถูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุฑู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ูŽ ุบูŽุถู‘ู‹ุง ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูู†ู’ุฒูู„ูŽ ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู’ู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูู…ู‘ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฏู’ู„ูŽุฌู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุณู’ุนููˆุฏู ู„ูุฃูุจูŽุดู‘ูุฑูŽู‡ู ุจูู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุถูŽุฑูŽุจู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุงุจูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุตูŽูˆู’ุชููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ุจููƒูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุงุนูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฌูุฆู’ุชู ู„ูุฃูุจูŽุดู‘ูุฑูŽูƒูŽ ุจูู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุณูŽุจูŽู‚ูŽูƒูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฅูู†ู’ ูŠูŽูู’ุนูŽู„ู’ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽุจู‘ูŽุงู‚ูŒ ุจูุงู„ู’ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽุงุชู ู…ูŽุง ุงุณู’ุชูŽุจูŽู‚ู’ู†ูŽุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุทู‘ู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุณูŽุจูŽู‚ูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู.

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab said:

When Abu Bakr and I were with him, the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) passed by "Abdullah bin Mas"ood, when he was reciting [in prayer]. He stood and listened to his recitation, then โ€˜Abdullah bowed and prostrated, and the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Ask, you will be given; ask, you will be given." Then the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) went away and said: โ€œWhoever would like to recite the Qur"an fresh as it was revealed, let him learn it from Ibn Umm "Abd," Then I went at night to โ€˜Abdullah bin Mas"ood to tell him the good news of what the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) had said, and when I knocked on the door - or he said: when he heard my voice - he said: What brings you here at this time? I said: I have come to tell you the glad tidings of what the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said. He said: Abu Bakr beat you to it. I said: If he did that, he is always ahead in doing righteous deeds. We never competed in doing good deeds but Abu Bakr beat us to it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 265
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 265

113

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (2542)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฌูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู†ูŽุถู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูุณูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽู†ู ุฌูŽุนูŽู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽุณู’ุชูŽู‚ู’ุฑููŠ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูููŽุงู‚ูŽ ููŽูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู‡ูŽู„ู’ ูููŠูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุฑูŽู†ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุชูŽู‰ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุฑูŽู†ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูู…ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ู‚ูŽุฑูŽู†ูŒ ููŽูˆูŽู‚ูŽุนูŽ ุฒูู…ูŽุงู…ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุฒูู…ูŽุงู…ู ุฃููˆูŽูŠู’ุณู ููŽู†ูŽุงูˆูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุนูŽุฑูŽููŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ู…ูŽุง ุงุณู’ู…ููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃููˆูŽูŠู’ุณูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูŽู„ู’ ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ูุฏูŽุฉูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‡ูŽู„ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจููƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽูŠูŽุงุถู ุดูŽูŠู’ุกูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ููŽุฏูŽุนูŽูˆู’ุชู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฐู’ู‡ูŽุจูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽูˆู’ุถูุนูŽ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูุฑู’ู‡ูŽู…ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุณูุฑู‘ูŽุชููŠ ู„ูุฃูŽุฐู’ูƒูุฑูŽ ุจูู‡ู ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงุณู’ุชูŽุบู’ููุฑู’ ู„ููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ุฃูŽุญูŽู‚ู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุณู’ุชูŽุบู’ููุฑูŽ ู„ููŠ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ุตูŽุงุญูุจู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽ ุงู„ุชู‘ูŽุงุจูุนููŠู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ูŠูู‚ูŽุงู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃููˆูŽูŠู’ุณูŒ ูˆูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ูุฏูŽุฉูŒ ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจูู‡ู ุจูŽูŠูŽุงุถูŒ ููŽุฏูŽุนูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฐู’ู‡ูŽุจูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽูˆู’ุถูุนูŽ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูุฑู’ู‡ูŽู…ู ูููŠ ุณูุฑู‘ูŽุชูู‡ู ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽุบู’ููŽุฑูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽ ูููŠ ุบูู…ูŽุงุฑู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูุฏู’ุฑูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุนูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุฏูู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูƒููˆููŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู†ูŽุฌู’ุชูŽู…ูุนู ูููŠ ุญูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽุฉู ููŽู†ูŽุฐู’ูƒูุฑู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุฌู’ู„ูุณู ู…ูŽุนูŽู†ูŽุง ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ู‡ููˆูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุนูŽ ุญูŽุฏููŠุซูู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ู‚ูู„ููˆุจูู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽูˆู’ู‚ูุนู‹ุง ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽู‚ูŽุนู ุญูŽุฏููŠุซู ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑูู‡ู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏููŠุซูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู„ููƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽูˆูŽุงุฑูุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒููŠูŽุงุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุฑู’ุซูŽุนู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุงุจู’ู†ู ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูุนู’ูููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ู†ูŽุญู’ูˆูŽ ุญูŽุฏููŠุซู ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ูŽ.

It was narrated that Usair bin Jabir said:

When the people of Yemen came, โ€˜Umar started asking people in the group, Is there anyone among you from Qaran, until he came to [the tribe of Qaran] and said: Who are you? They said: Qaran. Umarโ€™s reins - or Uwais"s reins - fell and one of them picked them up and gave them to the other. โ€˜Umar recognized him and said: What is your name? He said: I am Uwais, [สผUmar] said: Do you have a mother? [Uwais] said: Yes. [สปUmar] said: Did you have any whiteness [leprosy]? He said: Yes, but I prayed to Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, and He took it away, except for an area the size of a dirham near my navel, so that I would remember my Lord. โ€˜Umar said to him: Pray for forgiveness for me. He said: Rather you should pray for forgiveness for me; you are the Companion of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ). สผUmar (e.) said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "The best of the Tabi"een will be a man called Uwais who has a mother, and he has some whiteness, then he prayed to Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, and He took it away, except for an area the size of a dirham near his navel.โ€ So he prayed for forgiveness for him, then he disappeared in a group of people and no one knew where he ended up. Then he (Uwais) came to Koofah. We used to gather in a circle, remembering Allah, and he would sit with us, and when he spoke of Allah, his words would have an impact on us like that of no one else. And he quoted the hadeeth...
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 266
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 266

114

Sahih (Darussalam) [.

It was narrated from Qais or Ibn Qais, a man from Ju"fi, from "Umar bin al-Khattab

and he mentioned a Hadeeth similar to that of Affan.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 267
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 267

115

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1292) and Muslim (927).
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุซูŽุงุจูุชูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ูŽุณู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุนูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุญูŽูู’ุตูŽุฉู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุญูŽูู’ุตูŽุฉู ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุนูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูŠูุนูŽุฐู‘ูŽุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุนูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ูŽ ุตูู‡ูŽูŠู’ุจูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ูŠูŽุง ุตูู‡ูŽูŠู’ุจู ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุนูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูŠูุนูŽุฐู‘ูŽุจู.

It was narrated from Anas that:

โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab said, when Hafsah lamented for him: O Hafsah did you not hear the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: โ€œThe one who is lamented for will be tormented"? And Suhaib lamented for him, and "Umar said: O Suhaib, do you not know that "the one who is lamented for will be tormented"?
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 268
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 268

116

Sahih hadeeth.

It was narrated from Umm โ€˜Amr the daughter of "Abdullah that she heard "Abdullah bin azZubair narrate that:

He heard "Umar bin al-Khattab delivering a khutbah, He [สผUmar] said: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œWhoever wears silk in this world will not wear it in the Hereafter.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 269
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 269

117

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al-Bukhari (581) and Muslim (826).

It was narrated that Ibn "Abbas said:

Good men, among whom was "Umar bin al-Khattab, and the best of thern in my view is "Umar, testified before me that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "There is no Prayer after two prayers: after Fajr until the sun has risen, and after โ€˜Asr until the sun has set."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 270
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 270

118

Sahih (Darussalam) [.

Qatadah narrated a similar report from Abul-"Aliyah from Ibn "Abbas:

Good men testified...
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 271
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 271

119

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al-Bukhari (4606) and Muslim (3017)

It was narrated from Tariq bin Shihab that:

The Jews said to "Umar. You recite a verse which, is it had been revealed among us, we would have taken that day as a festiva!. สปUmar said: I know where it was revealed, on what day it was revealed and where the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) was when it was revealed. It was revealed on the day of "Arafah, when the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) was standing in "Arafah, Sufyan said: I am not sure whether it was a Friday or not, i.e., "This day, I have perfected your religion for you, completed My Favour upon you, and have chosen for you Islam as your religion.โ€ (al-Maโ€™idah 5:3).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 272
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 272

120

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1559) and Muslim (1221).

It was narrated that Abu Moosa said:

I came to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) when he was in al-Batha" and he said: "What did you enter ihram for?" I said: I have entered ihram for the same as the Prophet (๏ทบ) did. He said: "Have you brought a sacrificial animal?" I said: No. He said: โ€œCircumambulate the House and go between as-Safa and al-Marwah, then exit ihraam.โ€ So I circumambulated the House and went between as-Safa and al-Marwah, then I went to a woman of my people and she combed my hair and washed my head. I used to give fatwas on that basis during the caliphate of Abu Bakr and โ€˜Umar. During one season when I was performing Hajj, a man came to me and said: You do not know the latest fatwa of Ameer al-Mu"mineen concerning the Hajj. I said: O people, if we gave a fatwa, Ameer al-Mu"mineen is coming to you, so follow him in performing Hajj. When he came I said: What is this thing that you have introduced to the rituals [of Hajj]? He said: We see in the Book of Allah that Allah, may He be exalted, says: "And perform properly (i.e. all the ceremonies according to the ways of Prophet Muhammad (๏ทบ), the Hajj and โ€˜Umrah (i.e. the pilgrimage to Makkah) for Allah" [al-Baqarah 2:196], and if we follow the Sunnah of our Prophet (๏ทบ), he did not exit ihraam until he offered the sacrifice.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 273
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 273

121

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Bukhari (1597) and Muslim (1271)

It was narrated that Suwaid bin Ghafalah said:

I saw "Umar kiss the Black Stone and say: I know that you are a stone and cannot cause harm or bring benefit, but I saw Abul-Qasim (๏ทบ) show respect to you.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 274
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 274

122

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Al Bukhari (1684)

It was narrated that โ€˜Amr bin Maimoon said:

"Umar said [and โ€˜Abdur-Razzaq said: I heard "Umar]: The mushrikeen used not to depart from Jam" until the sun had risen on (the mountain of) Thabeer [Abdur Razzaq said:], and they used to say, Shine, Thabeer, so that we may leave quickly. So the Prophet (๏ทบ) differed from them and departed before the sun rose.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 275
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 275

123

Sahih (Darussalam) [, Al-Bukhari (2462) and Muslim (1691)

It was narrated that Ibn "Abbas said:

"Umar said: Allah, may He be exalted, sent Muhammad (๏ทบ) and sent down the Book to him. Among that which was revealed to him was the verse of stoning. We recited it and understood it. But I fear that with the passage of time, some people will say: We do not find the verse of stoning in the Book of Allah, and as a result an obligation that Allah revealed will be forsaken. Stoning is the due punishment in the Book of Allah for those who commit zina, both men and women, if they have been married and if proof is established, or there is a pregnancy or a confession.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 276
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 276

124

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Al-Bukhari (2419) and Muslim (818)

"Umar bin al-Khattab said:

I heard Hisham bin Hakeem reciting Sooratul-Furqan in prayer in a manner other than I recited it, and the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) had taught it to me. I caught him by his garment and brought him to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , and said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), I heard this man reciting Sooratul Furqan in a manner other than you taught it to me. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Recite it.โ€ He recited it in the manner in which I had heard him recite, and the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Thus it was revealed.โ€ Then he said to me: "Recite it.โ€ So I recited it and he said: โ€œThus it was revealed. This Qur"an has been revealed in seven modes of recitation, so recite whatever is easy for you."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 277
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 277

125

Sahih (Darussalam) [ according to the conditions of al Bukhari and Muslim

It was narrated that al Miswar bin Makhramah and "Abdur-Rahman bin Abdul-Qari heard

โ€˜Umar say: I passed by Hisharn bin Hakcem bin Hizam when he was reciting Sooratul Furqan... and he mentioned a similar hadeeth.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 278
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 278

126

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Al Bukhari (7163) and Muslim (1945)

It was narrated that " Abdullah bin as-Sa"di said:

โ€˜Umar said to me: Haven"t I been told that you do certain tasks for the state, then when you are given payment you do not accept it? He said: Yes. He said: Why do you do that? He said: I am well off and I have slaves and horses; I want my work to be a charity to the Muslims. He said: Do not do that, for I used to do what you are doing, and the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) would give me payment, and I would say: Give it someone who is more in need of it than me, And he said: Whatever of this wealth comes to you when you are not hoping for it or asking for it, take it, otherwise do not hanker after it.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 279
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 279

127

Sahih (Darussalam) [

It was narrated that as-Sa"ib bin Yazeed said:

"Umar met "Abdullah bin as-Sa"di... and he mentioned a similar report, but he said: โ€œGive it in charity,โ€ and he said: โ€œDo not hanker after it."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 280
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 280

128

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Al Bukhari (1490) and Muslim (1620)

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab said:

I gave a horse for the sake of Allah, but its owner neglected it. I thought that he would sell it for a cheap price, but I said to myself, not until I ask the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) about that. He said: โ€œDo not buy it even if he gives it to you for a dirham, for the one who takes back his charity is like the dog that goes back to its vomit.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 281
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 281

129

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (1990) and Muslim (1137)

lt was narrated that Abu "Ubaid, the freed slave of Ibn Azhar, said:

I attended Eid with "Umar bin al-Khattab, He came and prayed, then he stood and addressed the people saying: These are two days when the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade fasting, the day when you break your fast and the other day, when you eat from your sacrifices.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 282
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 282

130

Sahih hadeeth

It was narrated that Salim bin โ€˜Abdullah said:

สผUmar was a man of protective jealousy, and when he went out to pray, "Atikah bint Zaid would follow him, although he did not like her going out, but he did not like to stop her. He used to narrate that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "if your womenfolk ask you for permission to pray in the mosque, do not prevent them."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 283
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 283

131

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al Bukhari (2334)

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar said:

Were it not for the coming generations of the Muslims, I would not have conquered any town but I would have divided it as the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) divided Khaibar.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 284
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 284

132

Sahih hadeeth

It was narrated that Abul-"Ajfa" as-Sulami said:

I heard โ€˜Umar say: Do not make women"s dowries expensive, do not make women"s dowries expensive, for had this been a sign of honour in this world or piety before Allah, the first one of you to do it would have been the Prophet (๏ทบ). The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) did not give any of his wives, and none of his daughters were given, any more than twelve Oasiyyahs [as a dowry. And a man will go to great trouble in order to offer a high dowry to his wife.

On one occasion he said: A man would pay his wife a high dowry until he feels resentment towards her and says: You cost me everything I own, even the string to tie a waterskin and hang it up. He [the narrator] said: I was a young Arab boy with a non-Arab mother, and I did not know what a "string" was. "Umar said: And another thing you say of one who is killed in your campaigns and dies that so and so was killed as a martyr, and o and so died as a martyr. But perhaps he loaded the back of his mount with gold and silver for the purpose of trading. So do not say that, rather say what the Prophet (๏ทบ) (or what Muhammad) (๏ทบ) said: โ€œWhoever is killed or dies for the sake of Allah will be in Paradise."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 285
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 285

133

Da'if (Darussalam) [ because Abu Firas is unknown

It was narrated that Abu Firas suid:

"Umar bin al-Khattab gave a speech and said: O people, we used to know you when the Prophet (๏ทบ) was among us and revelation was coming down to him; Allah would tell us about you. But now the Prophet (๏ทบ) has passed away and revelation has ceased, and now the way to judge you is this whoever among you shows us good conduct, we will think well of him and love him; whoever among you shows us bad conduct, we will think badly of him and hate him for that, and whatever is in your hearts is between you and your Lord. There was a time when I used to think that whoever learned the Qur"an, seeking thereby Allah and (the reward that) is with Him, would be rewarded in the Hereafter, but some men learned Qur"an seeking that which is with people. So seek Allah by learning Qur"an and by your good deeds. By Allah, I do not send my workers to strike you or seize your wealth; rather I send them to you to teach you your religion and Sunnah, whoever has done to him something other than that, let him refer it to me, for by the One in Whose hand is my soul, I shall surely grant him retaliation. "Amr bin al-"As stood up and said: O Ameer al Mu"mineen, do you think if one of the Muslims was in charge of some people and he disciplined one of them, would you allow that one to settle the score with him? He said: Yes, by the One in Whose hand is the soul of "Umar, I would not certainly allow him to settle the score with him. I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) do that with regard to himself. But do not strike the Muslims and thus humiliate them, and do not keep them away from their wives on campaign for too long and thus expose them to temptation. Do not withhold from them their due rights and cause them to rebel; and do not make them camp in an area with a lot of trees, because that will cause them to be scattered.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 286
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 286

134

A sahih hadeeth. It is a repeat of no. 285

It was narrated that โ€˜Abul-"Ajfa" as-Sulami said:

I heard โ€˜Umar say: Do not make women"s dowries expensive,... and he mentioned the same hadeeth.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 287
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 287

135

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1287) and Muslim (927,928)

It was narrated that "Abdullah bin Abi Mulaikah said:

I was sitting beside Ibn โ€˜Umar, and we were waiting for the funeral of Umm Aban bint "Uthman bin "Affan. "Amr bin "Uthman was also present. Ibn โ€˜Abbas came, led by a guide, who told him where Ibn โ€˜Umar was. He came and sat beside me, so I was between them, and we heard a voice from inside the house, Ibn "Umar said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "The deceased is tormented because of the crying of his family." He said: And "Abdullah understood it as general in meaning. Ibn "Abbas said: We were with Ameer al-Muสผmineen โ€˜Umar until we came to some arid land, where we found a man who had halted in the shade of a tree. He said to me: Go and find out for me who that man is, I went and found that it was Suhaib. I came back to him and said: You told me to find out for you who that man is; it is Suhaib. He said: Tell him to join us. I said: He has his family with him. He said: Even if he has his family with him [and perhaps Ayyoob said on one occasion:Tell him to join us). When we came to Madinah, it was not long before Ameer al Muสผmineen [สผUmar} was attacked. Suhaib came, saying O my brother, O my friend! "Umar said: Do you not know, or have you not heard, that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "The deceased is tormented because of some of his family"s crying.โ€ โ€œAbdullah understood it as general in meaning, but โ€˜Umar said: some of [their] weeping. I went to "A"ishah, and I told her what Ibn "Umar had said. She said: No, by Allah, the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) did not say, โ€œThe deceased is tormented because of the weeping of anyone.โ€ Rather he said: โ€œAllah increases the torment of the kafir because of his family"s weeping, and that it is He (Allah) Who makes (whom He wills) laugh, and makes (whom He wills) weep, โ€œAnd no bearer of burdens shall bear another"s burden" [Al Anสผam 6:164].โ€ Ayyoob said: Ibn Abu Mulaikah said: al-Qasim bin Muhammad told me: When "Aสผishah heard what สผUmar and Ibn "Umar had said, she said. You are narrating to me from two who are not liars and are not to be suspected of being liars, but one may mishear.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 288
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 288

136

Sahih (Darussalam) [

"Abdullah bin Abi Mulaikah narratedโ€ฆ

and he mentioned a hadeeth similar to that of Ayyoob, except that he said: ibn "Umar said to "Amr bin "Uthman, when he was facing him: Why don"t you tell them not to weep? For the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "The deceased is tormented because of his family"s weeping for him."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 289
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 289

137

Sahih (Darussalam) [

"Abdullah bin Abi Mulaikah said:

A daughter of "Uthman bin "Affan died in Makkah and Ibn "Umar and Ibn "Abbas attended her funeral. I was sitting between them and ibn "Umar said to โ€˜Amr bin "Uthman, who was facing him: why don"t you tell them not to weep? For I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "The deceased is tormented because of his family"s weeping for him." And he mentioned a hadeeth similar to that of Isma"eel from Ayyoob from Ibn Abu Mulaikah.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 290
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 290

138

Sahih (Darussalam) because of corroborating evidence and Da'if (Darussalam)]

It was narrated that Ibn "Abbas said:

"Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said: I was marching with a group of people on a campaign with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), and I swore, saying: No, by my father. A man behind me called out: โ€œDo not swear by your fathers." I turned around and saw it was the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 291
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 291

139

Da'if (Darussalam) [

It was narrated that Malik bin Aws bin al-Hadathan said:

"Umar would swear an oath three times, saying: By Allah, no one has more right to this wealth than anyone else, I have no more right to it than anyone else; there is no Muslim who does not have a share in this wealth, except a slave, but it is to be divided according to our categories in the light of the Book of Allah and our closeness to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ). Thus it is to be given on the basis of a man"s efforts for the sake of lslam, his seniority in Islam, his support for Islam, and his need. By Allah, if I live, a shepherd in the mountains of Sanโ€˜aโ€™ will get his share of that wealth when he is tending his flock.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 292
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 292

140

Da'if (Darussalam) [

Abul-Mukhariq Zuhair bin Salim narrated that

"Umair bin Sa"d al-Ansari was appointed by "Umar as governor of Hims... and he mentioned the hadeeth "Umar said to Ka"b: I am going to ask you about something, so do not hide it from me. [Ka"b said: By Allah I will not hide anything I know. โ€˜Umar said: What do you fear most for the ummah of Muhammad (๏ทบ)? He said: Misleading leaders. "Umar said: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) told me about that in private and informed me of it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 293
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 293

141

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1292) and Muslim (927)

Salim said: I heard "Abdullah bin "Umar say:

"Umar said: Send me a doctor to examine this wound of mine. So they sent for an Arab doctor who gave สผUmar nabeedh, and the nabeedh was mixed with blood when it came out of the stab wound that was beneath his navel. I [Ibn โ€˜Umar) called another doctor from among the Ansar, from the tribe of Banu Mu"awiyah. He gave him milk to drink and it came out of the wound solid and white, The doctor said to him: O Ameer al Muโ€™mineen, give your final instructions, "Umar said: The man from Banu Mu"awiyah has spoken the truth. If you had said anything else I would not have believed you. The people wept for him when they heard that, but he said: Do not weep for us; whoever wants to weep, let him leave. Did you not hear what the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said? He said: "The deceased is tormented by his family"s weeping for him." Because of that, "Abdullah did not approve of any weeping if one of his sons or anyone else died.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 294
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 294

142

Sahih (Darussalam) [, Al Bukhari (1684)]

It was narrated that "Amr bin Maimoon said:

l heard "Umar bin al Khattab say: The people of Jahiliyyah used not to move on from Jam" until they saw the sun shining on (the mountain of) Thabeer, and they would say: Shine Thabeer, then we will move on swiftly. So the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) moved on before the sun rose.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 295
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 295

143

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2419) and Muslim (818)

It was narrated from al Miswar bin Makhrarnah and "Abdur-Rahman bin Abdul-Qari that they heard Umar bin al Khattab say:

I passed by Hisham bin Hakeem bin Hizam when he was reciting Sooratal-Furqan during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), I listened to his recitation and he was reciting in a manner different from the way in which the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) had taught me to recite it. I was about to interrupt him whilst he was praying, but I waited until he finished his prayer, and then I tied his garment around his neck. I said to him: Who taught you this soorah that you are reciting? He said: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) taught it to me. I said to him: You are lying by Allah! He taught me this soorah that you recited. I brought him to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) and said, "O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), I heard this man reciting Sooratal-Furqan in a way different to the way you taught it to me, and you taught me Sooratal-Furqan, The Prophet (๏ทบ) said: Let him go, O "Umar: Recite it, O Hisham. So he recited it to him as I had heard him recite it. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said, "Thus it was revealed." Then he said to me, "Recite it,โ€ so I recited it and he said, โ€œThus it was revealed." Then the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) is said: "This Qur"an has been revealed in seven different ways, so recite it in the way that is easiest for you.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 296
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 296

144

Sahih (Darussalam) [

It was narrated from al Miswar bin Makhramah and "Abdur-Rahman bin Abdul-Qari that

they heard Umar bin al Khattab say: I passed by Hisham bin Hakeem bin Hizam when he was reciting Sooratal-Furqan during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ). I listened to his recitation and he was reciting in a way different from the way in which the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) had taught me to recite it. I was about to interrupt him whilst he was praying, but I waited until he said the tasleem, and when he had said the tasleem,... and he narrated a similar report.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 297
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 297

145

Qawi (Darussalam)

It was narrated that Ibn "Abbas said:

"Umar said: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œWhoever among you is seeking Lailatul Qadr, let him seek it in the odd-numbered nights of the last ten days of Ramadan."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 298
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 298

146

Its tail is Sahih, al Bukhari (7218) and Muslim (1823)

It was narrated from Ibn สปUrmar that

It was said to "Umar: Why don"t you appoint a successor? He said: If I do not do that, one who is better than me did not do it either, namely the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ); if I do that, one who is better than me did it too, namely Abu Bakr.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 299
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 299

147

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (1) and Muslim (1907)

"Alqamah bin Waqqas al Laithi said that he heard

"Umar bin al-Khattab addressing the people, and he said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: โ€œAction is but by intention and each person will have but that which he intended. So whoever migrated for the sake of Allah and His Messenger, then his migration was for the sake of Allah and His Messenger, whoever migrated for some worldly purpose or for the sake of a woman whom he could marry, his migration was for the purpose for which he migrated.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 300
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 300

148

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (5829) and Muslim (2069)

It was narrated from "Umar bin al-Khattab that he said:

Wear izars and rida"s and wear shoes, but take off boots and pants; throw away the stirrups and jump onto your mounts. You should wear rough clothes and practise archery, and keep away from luxury and the dress of the non-Arabs, Beware of silk, for the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade it and said: "Do not wear silk except this much" - and the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) gestured with two fingers.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 301
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 301

149

Sahih, al-Bukhari (2462) and Muslim (1691)]

It was narrated from Saโ€™eed bin al-Musayyab that "Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said:

Beware of overlooking the verse of stoning and (do not let) anyone say: โ€œWe do not find two hadd punishments in the Book of Allah, for I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) stone [adulterers] and we stoned [them] after he was gone.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 302
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 302

150

Da'if (Darussalam) []

Al-"Awwam narrated:

an old man who was guarding the coast told me: I met Abu Salih, the freed slave of "Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) and he said, "Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) told us that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œThere is no night in which the sea does not approach the land three times and ask Allah for permission to flood it, but Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, restrains it."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 303
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 303

151

Sahih (Darussalam), al Bukhari (5252) and Muslim (1471)]

It was narrated that Anas bin Seereen said:

I asked Ibn "Umar about his wife whom he divorced. He said: I divorced her when she was menstruating, and I told โ€˜Umar about that, and he told the Prophet (๏ทบ) , who said: "Tell him to take her back, then when she becomes pure, he may divorce her when she is pure.โ€ He said: So I took her back, then I divorced her when she was pure. I said: Was that divorce that you gave her when she was menstruating counted as such?" He said: Why wouldn"t I count it? It must be counted even if I failed and acted foolishly.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 304
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 304

152

Da'if (Darussalam) [, because Abul-'Ala' Ash-Shami is unknown)

It was narrated that Abulโ€™Alaโ€™ ash-Shami said:

Abu Umamah put on a new garment, and when it reached his collarbone he said: Praise be to Allah Who has clothed me with that which conceals my "awrah and with which I may beautify myself in my life. Then he said: I heard "Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) say: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Whoever gets a new garment, and puts it on and says, when it reaches his collarbone, "Praise be to Allah Who has clothed me with that which conceals my โ€˜awrah and with which I may beautify myself in my life," then takes the garment that is worn out or that he took off - and gives it in charity, will be in the care of Allah, may He be exalted, and under the protection of Allah in life and in death, in life and in death, in life and in death."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 305
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 305

153

Hasan (Darussalam) []

It was narrated from Ibn "Umar that "Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

I asked the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) : O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), if one of us wants to sleep before doing ghusl when he is junub, what should he do? He said: "Let him do wudooโ€™ as for prayer, then sleep.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 306
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 306

154

Da'if (Darussalam) [, because of the weakness of abdul-A'la Ath-Tha'labi]

It was narrated that โ€˜AbdurRahman bin Abi Laila said:

I was with al-Bara" bin "Azib and "Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) in al-Baqee, looking for the new moon, when a rider came and was met by "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡), who said: Where have you come from? He said: From the Bedouins. He said: Have you sighted the moon? He said: Yes. โ€˜Umar said: Allah Akbar! Verily one man"s (testimony) is enough for the Muslims. Then โ€˜Umar got up and did wudoo", and he wiped over his leather slippers, then he prayed Maghrib. Then he said. This is what I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) do. Abun-Nadr said. He was wearing a jubbah with tight sleeves, and he brought his arm out from beneath it and wiped over his leather slippers.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 307
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 307

155

Da'if (Darussalam) [, because it is interrupted)

It was narrated that Abu Labeed said:

A man called Bairah bin Asad went out from Tahiyah, migrating [Hijrah], and he reached Madinah a few days after the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) died โ€˜Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) saw him and realized he was a stranger, so he said to him. Who are you? Are you from Oman? He said: Yes. He took him by the hand and brought him to Abu Bakr (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) and said: This man is from the land of which heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) saying: "I know a land called Oman at the edge of the sea, in it is a tribe of the Arabs who, if my envoy goes to them, they will not shoot arrows or throw stones at him.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 308
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 308

156

Sahih (Darussalam) [)

It was narrated from Ibn สผUmar that โ€˜Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) - and I think he attributed it to the Prophet (๏ทบ) said:

"Allah, may He be blessed and exalted - says: "Whoever humbles himself before Me like thatโ€ โ€“ and he turned his palm down towards the ground like that, very close to the ground - " I will raise him in status like this" - and he turned his palm up towards the heaven and raised his hand like that.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 309
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 309

157

Qawi (Darussalam)]

It was narrated that Abu "Uthman an-Nahdi said:

l was sitting beneath the minbar of "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) when he was addressing the people, and he said in his khutbah:I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: โ€œWhat I fear the most for this ummah is every knowledgeable hypocrite with a smooth tongue.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 310
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 310

158

Sahih because of corroborating evidence and Da'if (Darussalam)]

It was narrated from Muslim bin Yasar al-Juhani that

"Umar bin al-Khattab was asked about this verse: "And (remember) when your Lord brought forth from the Children of Adam, from their loins" [al-A"raf 7:172], "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) being asked about it and the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Allah created Adam, then He passed His right hand over his loins and brought forth from him his offspring and said: I have created these for Paradise and they will do the deeds of the people of Paradise. Then He passed (His hand) over his loins and brought forth from him his offspring and said: I have created these for Hell and they will do the deeds of the people of Hell.โ€ A man said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), why then should we strive? The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "When Allah creates a person for Paradise, He causes him to do the deeds of the people of Paradise until he dies doing one of the deeds of the people of Paradise and is admitted to Paradise thereby. And when He creates a person for Hell, He causes him to do the deeds of the people of Hell until he dies doing one of the deeds of the people of Hell and is admitted to Hell thereby.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 311
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 311

159

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al-Bukhari (878) and Muslim (845)]

It was narrated from Salim bin "Abdullah bin "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡)l from his father

that one of the companions of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) entered the mosque one Friday when "Umar bin al-Khattab was standing and addressing the people, "Umar said: What time is this? He said:O Ameer al-Muโ€™mineen, I came back from the market and as soon as I heard the call to prayer, I did no more than wudoo,โ€™ and came here. โ€˜Umar said: Just wudooสป. when you know that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) used to enjoin us to do ghusl?
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 312
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 312

160

Sahih hadeeth]

It was narrated that Ya"la bin Umayyah said:

I circumambulated (the Kaโ€™bah] with "Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) and he touched the corner, Ya"la said: I was next to the House and when I reached the western corner which is next to the Black Stone, I took his hand to touch it and he said: What is the matter with you? I said. Aren"t you going to touch it? He said: Did you not do tawaf with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) ? I said: Yes indeed. He said: Did you see him touch these two western corners? I said: No. He said: Don"t you have a good example in him? I said: Yes indeed. He said: Then stop bothering about that.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 313
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 313

161

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2134) and Muslim (1586)]

It was narrated that Malik bin Aws bin al-Hadathan said:

l brought some dinars of mine and wanted to exchange them. Talhah bin โ€˜Ubaidullah met me and we agreed to an exchange. Then he took them and said: Wait until my storekeeper comes - Abu "Amir said. From al-Ghalal (a place). And he said concerning it. All of it should be โ€˜Take thisโ€™ and "take this" [i.e., exchanged on the spot]. - I asked โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) about that and he said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "Silver for gold is riba, unless it is exchanged on the spot, wheat for wheat is riba, unless it is exchanged on the spot; barley for barley is riba, unless it is exchanged on the spot dates for dates is ribu unless it is exchanged on the spot.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 314
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 314

162

Sahih al-Bukhari (1292) and Muslim (927)]

It was narrated from Saโ€™eed bin al-Musayyab that "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "The deceased is tormented because of the weeping of his family over him.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 315
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 315

163

Sahih, because of corroborating evidence, al-Bukhari (1605)

It was narrated that "Adi bin Hatim said:

I came to Umar bin al Khattab with some of my people and he starting giving to each man of Tayy two thousand, and he ignored me, I tried to come in front of him and he turned away from me, then I came from the direction he was facing and he turned away from me. Then I said: O Ameer al-Mu"mineen, do you recognize me? He smiled and leaned backwards, then he said: Yes, by Allah! I know that you believed when they disbelieved, and you came when they turned away, and you remained loyal when they betrayed. The first sadaqah (zakah) that brightened the face of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) and the faces of his Companions was the sadaqah of Tayy that you brought to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ)

Then he began to apologize, then he said: I am only giving to people who are extremely poor and they are the leaders of their tribes and have responsibilities.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 316
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 316

164

Saheel, because of corroborating evidence; this isnad is Hasan, al-Bukhari (1605)

It was narrated from Zaid bin Aslam, from his father who said:

I heard "Umar bin al-Khattab say: Why are we running now and uncovering our shoulders (in tawaf) when Allah has caused Islam to prevail and has eliminated kufr and its people? Whatever the case, we will never give up something that we did at the time of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 317
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 317

165

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al Bukhari (1368)

lt was narrated that Abul Aswad al-Deeli said:

When I came to Madinah, sickness was occurring in the city. `Abdus-Samad said: They were dying quickly. I sat with "Umar bin al-Khattab and a funeral passed by. Good things were said about (the deceased) and โ€˜Umar said: It is due. Then another (funeral) passed by: good things were said about (the deceased) and he said: It is due, Then another funeral passed by: bad things were said about the deceased and โ€˜Umar said: It is due, I said: What is due, O Ameer al Mu"mineen? He said: I say what the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œAny Muslim in whose favour four people testify, Allah will admit him to Paradise." We said: Or three? He said: โ€œOr three." We said: Or two? He said: โ€œOr two." Then we did not ask him about one.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 318
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 318

166

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (882) and Muslim (845)

Abu Hurairah said:

Whilst "Umar bin al-Khattab was delivering a khutbah, a man came and sat down, "Umar said: Why are you coming late to Jumuโ€™ah? The man said: O Ameer al-Mu"mineen, as soon as I heard the call I did wudoo", then I came. "Umar said: Only wudoo? Didn"t you hear the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "When one of you goes to Jumuโ€™ah, let him do ghusl"?
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 319
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 319

167

Sahih (Darussalam) []

Abu Salamah narrated that Abu Hurairah (...) told him that

whilst โ€˜Umar was delivering the khutbah... and he narrated a similar report.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 320
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 320

168

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al Bukhari (5835)

It was narrated from "Imran bin Hittan,

according to what Harb thinks, who asked Ibn "Abbas about silk garments. He said: Ask "A"ishah about that. So he asked "A"ishah and she said: Ask Ibn "Umar (...). So he asked Ibn "Umar, and he said: Abu Hafs told me that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Whoever wears silk in this world will have no share of it in the Hereafter.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 321
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 321

169

Sahih (Darussalam) [

It was narrated from Humaid bin Abdur-Rahman al-Himyari that

Ibn "Abbas said in Basrah; I was the first one to come to โ€˜Umar when he was stabbed. He said: Learn from me three things, for I fear that the people will not come to me (before I die). As for me, I did not pass any judgement regarding kalalah and I did not appoint any successor to be in charge of the people after me, and every slave of his [Umar"s] will be free. The people said to him: Appoint a successor. He said: Whatever I do, it was done by someone better than me. If I leave the people to decide their affairs, the Prophet (๏ทบ) of Allah did that, and if I appoint someone, one who is better than me did that, namely Abu Bakr, I said to him: Receive the glad tidings of Paradise; you accompanied the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), your companionship with him was long; you were appointed in charge of the believers and you showed strength and fulfilled the trust. He said. As for your glad tidings to me of Paradise - "Affan [another narrator] said: No by Allah besides Whom there is no god- if I had the entire world and all that is in it, I would give it as a ransom from the terror of what lies before me, even before knowing the outcome. As for what you say about me being in charge of the believers" affairs, by Allah I wish that I could get out of it without gaining or losing anything. As for what you said about me accompanying the Prophet (๏ทบ) of Allah, that is true.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 322
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 322

170

Hasan

It was narrated that Abu Unma mah bin Sahl said:

โ€˜Umar wrote to AbuสผUbaidah bin al-Jarrah [saying]: Teach your children swimming and teach your fighters archery. After that they used to practise archery frequently, then a stray arrow came and killed a boy, and no one knew where it came from; he was under the care of his maternal uncle. Abu "Ubaidah wrote to "Umar about that [asking]: To whom should I pay his diyah? โ€˜Umar wrote back telling him that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) used to say: โ€œAllah and His Messenger are the mawla (guardian) of the one who has no mawla, and the maternal uncle is the heir of the one who has no heir.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 323
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 323

171

Hasan (Darussalam) [

It was narrated that สผUmar bin al-Khattab said:

I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "The loyalty (wala") of a freed slave (to his former master) is passed on to the one who inherits his wealth, father or son.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 324
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 324

172

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (1597) and Muslim (1270)

It was narrated that "Abis bin Rabeeโ€™ah said:

I saw "Umar go to the Black Stone and say: By Allah, I know that you are a stone and cannot cause harm or bring benefit. Were it not that I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) kiss you, I would not have kissed you. Then he leant down and kissed it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 325
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 325

173

Sahih because of corroborating evidence; this isnad is da'eef, because of the weakness of Dujain bin Thabit

Dujain Abul-Ghusn, who was from Basrah, said:

I came to Madinah and met Aslam, the freed slave of "Umar bin al-Khattab. I said. Tell me(a report)from "Umar. He said: I cannot, I am afraid that I will add or subtract something. If we said to โ€˜Umar, Tell us something from the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), he would say: I am afraid that I may add or subtract a letter. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œWhoever tells a lie about me will be in Hell."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 326
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 326

174

Da'if (Darussalam) [ jiddan (very weak)

It was narrated that "Umar said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œWhoever says in a marketplace, There is no God but Allah alone, with no partner or associate, His is the dominion, to Him all praise is due, all goodness is in His hand, He grants life and death and He has power overall things," Allah will record for him one thousand thousand good deeds and will erase from him one thousand thousand bad deeds, and will build a house for him in Paradise."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 327
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 327

175

Hasan (Darussalam) [, Muslim (114)

"Umar bin al-Khattab (s) said:

On the day of Khaibar, a group of the companions of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: So and so is a martyr, So and so is a martyr, until they passed by a man and said: So and so is a martyr. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "No, I saw him being dragged to Hell because of a cloak that he stole from the booty. Go out and call out to the people, โ€œNo one will enter Paradise except the believers." So I went out and called out: No one will enter Paradise except the believers.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 328
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 328

176

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (6647) and Muslim (1646)

It was narrated from Sa"d bin สผUbaidah, from Ibn โ€˜Umar, that

"Umar said: No, by my father. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œStop it! whoever swears by anything other than Allah has committed an act of shirk."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 329
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 329

177

Da'if (Darussalam) [, because of the weakness of Abdullah

It was narrated from Nafiโ€™ that

โ€˜Umar added to the mosque the area between the pillar and the enclosure, and โ€˜Uthman added[|something to the mosque], "Umar said: Were it not for the fact that I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say. "We want to extend our mosque,โ€ I would not have added anything to it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 330
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 330

178

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2462) and Muslim (1691)

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar that he said:

Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, sent Muhammad (๏ทบ) with the truth, and He sent down with him the Book. One of the things that were revealed to him was the verse of stoning. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) stoned [adulterers] and we stoned [them] after him. Then he said: We used to recite, "Do not forsake your real father (and attribute yourself to someone else), for this is an act of kufr, if you do that, or it is an act of kufr to forsake your real father (and attribute yourself to someone else)." And the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Do not praise me as the son of Maryam was praised; rather I am a slave, so say: His slave and His Messenger." Perhaps Ma"mar said: "As the Christians praised the son of Maryam.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 331
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 331

179

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (7218) and Muslim (1823)

It was narrated from Salim from Ibn โ€˜Umar that he said to "Umar:

I heard the people saying something so I decided that I should talk to you. They are saying that you are not going to appoint a successor. He lowered his head for a while, then he looked up and said: Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, will protect His religion. If I do not appoint a successor, the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) did not appoint a successor either; if I do appoint a successor, Abu Bakr appointed a successor. By Allah, once he mentioned the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) and Abu Bakr, I realized that he was not going to regard anyone else as equal to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) and that he was not going to appoint a successor.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 332
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 332

180

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (2904) and Muslim (1757)

It was narrated from Malik bin Aws that al-Hadathan said:

โ€˜Umar sent word to me... and he mentioned the hadeeth. I said to you both]: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "We are not to be inherited from and what we leave behind is charity."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 333
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 333

181

Sahih; al-Bukhari (1292) and Muslim (927)

It was narrated that Ibn al Musayyab said:

When Abu Bakr died, people wept for him. "Umar said: The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "The deceased is tormented because of the weeping of the living.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 334
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 334

182

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1399) and Muslim (20)

It was narrated that Abu Hurairah said:

When the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) died and some people apostatised, โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab said: O Abu Bakr, how can you fight the people, when the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œI have been commanded to fight the people until they say La ilaha illallah (There is no god but Allah), and whoever says La ilaha illallah, his wealth and his life are protected from me, and his reckoning will be with Allah"? Abu Bakr said: I will most certainly fight those who separate prayer and zakah, for zakah is what is due on wealth. By Allah, if they withhold from me a small she-goat that they used to give to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), I will certainly fight them for withholding it. สปUmar said: By Allah, as soon as I saw that Allah had opened Abu Bakr"s heart to the idea of fighting I knew that he was right.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 335
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 335

183

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2904) and Muslim (1757)

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "We are not to be inherited from; what we leave behind is charity."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 336
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 336

184

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2904) and Muslim (1757)

It was narrated that Malik bin Aws said:

โ€˜Umar sent for me... and he mentioned a similar hadeeth. He said: The wealth of Banun-Nadeer was among the fai" that Allah granted to His Messenger for which the Muslims made no expedition with either cavalry or camelry (cf. al-Hashr 59:6). He allocated some of it for his family"s maintenance for one year, and what was left he spent on horses and weapons in preparation for jihad for the sake of Allah, may He be glorified and exalted.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 337
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 337

185

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1954) and Muslim (1100)]

It was narrated from "Asim bin โ€˜Umar from his father that the Prophet (๏ทบ) said:

"When night comes and day departs and the sun sets, the fasting person may break his fast.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 338
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 338

186

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (4914} and Muslim (1479)]

It was narrated that Ibn "Abbas said:

I wanted to ask "Umar something but I did not find a chance, so I waited for two years. Then when we were in Marraz-Zahran, he went to relieve himself, then he came after relieving himself and I poured water for him, I said: O Ameer al-Mu"mineen, who are the two women who helped one another against the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ)"? He said: "A"ishah and Hafsah.

" As mentioned in the Qur"an: "If you two (wives of the Prophet (๏ทบ)) turn in repentance to Allรขh. (it will be better for you), your hearts are indeed so inclined to oppose what the Prophet (๏ทบ) likes); but if you help one another against him (Muhammad (๏ทบ)). then verily, Allรขh is his Maula (Lord, or Master, or Protector), and Jibril (Gabriel). and the righteous among the believers, and furthermore, the angels are his helpers"

(surah at-Tahreem 66:3)
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 339
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 339

187

lts isnad is qawi]

It was narrated from Ibn Seereen, who heard it from Abul-"Ajifa" who said:I heard "Umar say:

Do not make women"s dowries too expensive, for if it were a sign of honour in this world or a sign of piety in the Hereafter, the most likely of you to do it would have been the Prophet (๏ทบ). But he did not give any of his daughters in marriage or marry any of his wives for more than twelve Ooqiyyah, Furthermore, you say during your campaigns. So and so was killed as a martyr, So and so died as a martyr, but perhaps he loaded his mount"s back with gold and silver, hoping to do trade. So do not say that; rather say as Muhammad said: โ€œWhoever died for the sake of Allah is in Paradise.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 340
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 340

188

Sahih Hadeeth]

It was narrated from Ma"dari bin Abi Talhah al-Ya"rnari that

"Umar stood up to deliver a khutbah. He praised and glorified Allah, then he mentioned the Prophet (๏ทบ) of Allah and Abu Bakr, then he said: "I have seen a dream, in which I saw myself being pecked by a rooster twice, and I think it signals my death. The people are telling me to appoint a caliph after me. Allah will not cause His caliphate or His religion to be lost, or that with which He sent His Prophet (๏ทบ). If I die, then the caliphate is to be decided by a council of these six men with whom the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) was pleased when he died, then whichever of them you swear allegiance to, listen to him and obey. I know that there are some men then who will seek to undermine this matter, and I have sought them with these two hands of mine in support of Islam. It they do that, then those are the enemies of Allah, the misguided disbelievers. By Allah, I am not leaving behind anything of more concern to me than kalalah. I asked the Prophet (๏ทบ) of Allah about it and he never spoke to me in such a harsh manner as he did with regard to that, to such an extent that he poked me in the chest or side with his hand or his finger and said: "O "Umar: The verse at the end of Soorah an Nisaโ€™ that was revealed in summer is sufficient for you.โ€ If I live, I will pass a judgement concerning it that no one who reads Qur"an or who does not read Qur"an will dispute. Then "Umar said: O Allah, bear witness concerning the governors of the regions; I sent them to teach the people their religion and the Sunnah of their Prophet (๏ทบ), and to divide the sai" among them, and to judge between them on a fair basis, and whatever they found difficult they were to refer to me. Then he said: O people, you eat two plants that I think are nothing but distasteful, this garlic and onion. At the time of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), I would see that is the smell of these things was found on a man, he would be taken by the hand and led out to al-Baqee". Whoever must eat them, let him cook them to death.สปUmar said this in a khutbah on Friday, and was stabbed on Wednesday 26 Dhul Hijjah.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 341
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 341

189

Sahih hadeeth, Muslim (1222)]

It was narrated from Abu Moosa that "Umar said:

It was the Sunnah of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), i.e., tamattu" (in Hajj), but I am afraid that they will have intimate relations with them (their wives) beneath the Arak trees, then they will bring them for Hajj.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 342
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 342

190

Sahih lighairihi, and its isnad is da'eef because of the weakness of Yazeed bin Ziyad and Asim bin 'Ubaidullah] .

It was narrated that สผUmar said:

I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) doing wudoo after relieving himself, and wiping over his leather slippers (khuff), then praying.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 343
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 343

191

lts isnad is Hasan]

It was narrated that Simak said:

I heard โ€˜Iyad al-Ash"ari say: i was present at al-Yarmouk and we had five commanders over us: Abu "Ubaidah bin al-Jarrah, Yazeed bin Abi Sufyan, Ibn Hasanah, Khalid bin al-Waleed and "Iyad - and this "Iyad was not the one who narrated reports to Simak. - "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said: If fighting occurs, then your commander is Abu "Ubaidah. So we wrote to him, saying: We are facing death; and we asked him for reinforcements. He wrote to us, saying: I have received your letter asking for reinforcements and I can tell you about who has the greatest support and the most ready troops.

Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, ask Him for support, for Muhammad (๏ทบ) was caused to prevail on the day of Badr with fewer than your numbers. When this letter of mine reaches you, fight them without referring back to me. So we fought them, and we defeated them, pursuing and killing them for four parasangs, and we acquired wealth (booly). They discussed the issue (of booty) and โ€˜Iyad suggested to us that we should give ten for every head. And Abu สผUbaidah said: Who will compete with me (in a horse race)? A young man said: I will, if you don"t get angry. Then he beat him, and I saw the two braids of Abu โ€˜Ubaidah flying as he raced behind him on an Arabian horse.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 344
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 344

192

Sahih, because of the corroborating evidence, and Da'if (Darussalam) because of the weakness of Ali bin Zaid bin Jud'an, al-Bukhari (5835) and Muslim (2069)

It was narrated that "Ali bin Zaid said:

I came to Madinah and entered upon Salim bin โ€˜Abdullah, and i was wearing a silk jubbah. Salim said to me: What are you doing with this garment? I heard my father narrate from "Umar bin al-Khattab (c.) that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Silk is only worn by one who has no share [in the Hereafter!
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 345
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 345

193

A Hasan Hadeeth]

It was narrated from โ€˜Amr bin Shu"aib from his father that his grandfather said:

A man killed his (own) son deliberately and the

case was referred to "Umar bin al Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡), who ruled that the murderer should pay one hundred camels (as diyah): thirty three-year-old she-camels, thirty four-year-old she-camels and forty five-year-old she camels. He said: And the killer does not inherit anything. Were it not that I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say, "No father is to be killed in retaliation for his son,โ€ I would have executed you.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 346
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 346

194

Hasan because of corroborating evidence; this isnad is da'eef

It was narrated that โ€˜Amr bin Shu"aib said:

"Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said. Were it not that I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say, โ€œThe killer gets nothing (from the estate of the one he murdered)," I would have included you among the heirs. And he called the maternal uncle of the one who had been killed and gave the camels to him.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 347
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 347

195

Hasan because of corroborating evidence; this isnad is da'eef, because it is interrupted]

It was narrated from Mujahid bin Jabr... and he mentioned the same Hadeeth. He said:

"Umar (4) took thirty three year-old she-camels, thirty four year-old she-camels and forty she camels between the ages of five and eight years, all of which were pregnant, then he called the brother of the one who had been killed and gave them to him, not to his father. And he said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: โ€œThe killer gets nothing."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 348
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 348

196

Sahih (Darussalam) [ alBukhari (2904) and Muslim (1757):

It was narrated that Malik bin Aws bin al-Hadathan said:

al"Abbas and "Ali came to "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) with a dispute. Al-"Abbas said: Judge between me and this one, And the people said: Judge between them, judge between them. He said: I shall not judge between them; they know that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "We are not to be inherited from; what we leave behind is charity."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 349
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 349

197

Hasan]

It was narrated from Ibn al Musayyab that "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

One of the last verses to be revealed was the verse on riba, and when the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) died, he had not explained it. So avoid riba and any dubious matter.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 350
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 350

198

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (1222)]

It was narrated from Abu Moosa that he used to advise people to do Tamattu" (in Hajj). A man said to him:

Do not rush in giving fatwas, for you do not know what Ameer al-Mu"mineen has decided with regard to Haji. When he met him later on, he asked him and โ€˜Umar said: I know that the Prophet (๏ทบ) did it and his Companions did it, but I do not like [the people] to have intercourse with [their wives] beneath the arak trees and go out to Hajj with their heads dripping(from ghusl).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 351
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 351

199

Sahih (Darussalam), alBukhari (2462) and Muslim (1691)

it was narrated that "AbdurRahman bin "Awf said:

"Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) did Haji and wanted to deliver a speech to the people. โ€˜Abdur-Rahman bin โ€˜Awf said: The uneducated people are gathered around you, so delay it until you come to Madinah. When he came to Madinah, I got close to him when he was on the minbar and I heard him saying. Some people are saying, Why should we stone [adulterers]? In the book of Allah it only mentions flogging But the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) stoned adulterers] and we stoned [them] after him. Were it not that people would say, You have inserted something into the Book of Allah that is not part of it, I would have inserted it as it was revealed.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 352
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 352

200

Sahih hadeeth and its isnad is Hasan, Muslim (2978)]

It was narrated that Simak bin Harb said:

I heard an-Nu"man - i.e., bin Basheer - say: "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) mentioned what the people had acquired of worldly gains and said: I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) remaining curled up [with hunger pangs] all day, unable to find even the worst type of dates with which to fill his stomach.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 353
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 353

201

Sahih (Darussalam) [ alBukhari (1292) and Muslim (927)]

It was narrated from Ibn โ€˜Umar, from his father, that the Prophet said:

"The deceased is tormented in his grave because of being wailed over." Al-Hajjaj said: "...because of the wailing over him."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 354
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 354

202

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al-Bukhari (581) and Muslim (826)]

It was narrated that Qatadah said: I heard Rufai" Abul-"Aliyah narrate from Ibn โ€˜Abbas:

A man told me - Shuโ€™bah said: I think he said: one of the Companions of the Prophet (๏ทบ) - The most admired of therm to me is Umar bin al Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡): The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade praying at two times: after "Asr until the sun sets and after Fajr until the sun rises.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 355
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 355

203

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (5828) and Muslim (2069)]

It was narrated that Qatadah said:

I heard Abu "Uthman an-Nahdi say: the letter of โ€˜Umar came to us when we were in Adhrabeejan with "Utbah bin Farqad, or in Syria, (saying). The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade silk except so much - two fingers. Abu "Uthman said: We had no doubt that he meant silk borders.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 356
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 356

204

Sahih (Darussalam) []

It was narrated that Qatadah said:

I heard Abu "Uthman an-Nahdi say: The letter of โ€˜Umar came to us...
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 357
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 357

205

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1684)]

It was narrated that โ€˜Amr bin Maimoon said:

"Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) prayed Fajr when he was in Jam". Abu Dawood said: We were with "Umar in Jamo, and he said: The mustrikoort used not to move on until the sun rose, and they would say: Shine, (Mount) Thabeer. The Prophet (๏ทบ) of Allah differed from them and moved on before the sun rose.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 358
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 358

206

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (287) and Muslim (306}]

It was narrated that "Abdullah bin Deenar said:

I heard Ibn "Umar say: "Umar (...) asked the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) : If I become junub at night; what should I do? He said: "Wash your private part then do wudooโ€™ then go to sleep.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 359
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 359

207

Sahih (Darussalam) []

It was narrated that Salamah bin Kuhail said:

I heard Abul-Hakam said: I asked Ibn สปUmar about earthenware jars and he narrated to us from โ€˜Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade (making nabeedh in) earthenware jars, gourds, and varnished jars,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 360
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 360

208

Sahih (Darussalam), alBukhari (1597) and Muslim (1270)]

It was narrated that "Abdullah bin Sarjis said:

I saw the bald one - meaning "Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡)-kissing the Black Stone and saying. I know that you are only a stone, but I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) kiss you
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 361
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 361

209

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (3162)]

It was narrated that Juwairiyyah bin Qudamah said:

I did Haji and I came to Madinah the year โ€˜Umar was stabbed. He gave a speech and said: I dreamt that a red rooster pecked me once or twice-Shu"bah was riot certain - and what happened was that he was stabbed. The people were given permission to enter upon him. The first ones to enter upon him were the Companions of the Prophet (๏ทบ), then the people of Madinah, then the people of Syria. Then permission was given to the people of Iraq, and I was among those who entered upon him. Every time people entered upon him, they praised him and wept. When we entered upon him, he had wrapped his stomach with a black turban cloth, and blood was flowing. We said: Give us some advice; and no one asked him for advice except us. Ile said: You have to adhere to the Book of Allah, for you will never go astray so long as you follow it. We said: Advise u5. He said: I urge you to be kind to the Muhajireen, for the people will increase in number and they will decrease. And I advise you to be kind to the Ansar, for they are the people of Islam with whom Islam sought refuge. And I advise you to be kind to the Bedouin, for they are your origin and your strength. And I advise you be kind to the non-Muslim people under your rule (ahludh-dhimmah), for they have a covenant with your Prophet (๏ทบ) and they give you a source of income. You may leave now. And he did not say any more to us than these words. Muhammad bin Ja"far said: Shuโ€™bah said: Then after that I asked him and he said concerning the Bedouin. I advise you to be kind to the Bedouin, for they are your brothers and the enemy of your enemy.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 362
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 362

210

Sahih (Darussalam) []

It was narrated that Juwairiyyah bin Qudamah said:

I did Haji and I came to Madinah the year โ€˜Umar was stabbed. He gave a speech and said: I dreamt that a red rooster pecked me once or twice - Shu"bah was not certain - and only a week later, he was stabbed. And he mentioned a similar report, except that he said: And l advise you be kind to the non-Muslim people under your rule (ahludh-dhimmah), and honour the covenant of your Prophet (๏ทบ). Then I asked him after that and he said concerning the Bedouin: I advise you to be kind to the Bedouin, for they are your brothers and the enemy of your enemy,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 363
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 363

211

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al-Bukhari (581) and Muslim (826)]

It was narrated from Ibn "Abbas (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) that he said:

Some men of good character, among whom was โ€˜Umar, who is the best of them in my view, testified in my presence that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade praying after Fajr prayer until the sun rose, and after Asr prayer until it (the sun) set.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 364
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 364

212

Sahih hadeeth]

It was narrated from Suwaid bin Ghafalah that "Umar addressed the people in al-Jabiyah and said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade wearing silk except the width of two fingers or three or four - and he gestured with his hand.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 365
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 365

213

Sahih hadeeth)

It was narrated from Ibn สผUmar, from "Umar, that the Prophet (๏ทบ) said:

"The deceased is tormented in his grave because of the wailing over him.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 366
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 366

214

lts isnad is Sahih, Muslim (8)]

Ibn โ€˜Umar said:

สผUmar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) told me: Whilst we were with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) one day, a man came to us whose garment was exceedingly white and whose hair was exceedingly black, and we did not see any signs of travel on him, and none of us knew who he was. He came and sat before the Prophet (๏ทบ), resting his knees against his and placing his hands on his thighs. He said: O Muhammad, tell me about Islam: what is Islam? The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Islam means to bear witness that there is no god except Allah and that Muhammad is the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), to establish regular prayer, to pay zakali, to fast Ramadan and to perform pilgrimage to the House (the Ka"bah), if you have the means." He said: You have spoken the truth. He (โ€˜Umar) said: It amazed us, how he questioned him and said that he had spoken the truth. He said: Tell me about faith (Eeman). He said: "Faith is to believe in Allah, His angels, His Books, His Messengers, the Last Day, and to believe in al-qadar (the divine will and decree), both good and bad." He said: You have spoken the truth. He said: Tell me about ihsan: what is ilisan? - Yazeed said: - "It is to worship Allah as if you can see Him, for although you cannot see Ilim, He sees you." He said: Tell me about the Hour. He said: โ€œThe one who is asked about it does not know more than the one who is asking.โ€ He said: Then tell me about its signs. Ise said: "When the slave woman gives birth to her mistress, and when you see the barefoot, naked, destitute shepherds competing in the construction of lofty buildings.โ€ He [Umar] said: Then he went away. He sumar waited for a while - Yazeed said: three (days). Then he (the Prophet (๏ทบ) said to me: "O"Umar, do you know who that questioner was?" I said: Allah and His Messenger know best. He said: โ€œThat was Jibreel, who came to you to teach you your religion."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 367
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 367

215

Sahih (Darussalam) []

Ibn โ€˜Umar said. "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) told us:

We were sitting with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) and he mentioned the same hadeeth, except that he said: No signs of travel were to be seen on him. And he- said: "Umar said: 1 waited for three (days), then the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œoสปUmar...โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 368
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 368

216

Sahih (Darussalam), Muslim (1217)]

lt was narrated that Abu Nadrah said:

I said to Jabir bin โ€˜Abdullah: Ibn az-Zubair (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) forbids tamattu" (in hajj) and Ibn "Abbas enjoins it. He said to me: I knew about this issue. We did tamattu" with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) - "Affan said: And with Abu Bakr - then when "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) became Caliph, he addressed the people and said: The Qur"an is still the Qur"an and the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) is the Messenger. There were two mutโ€™ahs at the time of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ): one of them was the mut"ah of Hajj (i.e., tannaffit") and the other was mut"ah with women.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 369
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 369

217

Sahih hadeeth)

lt was narrated from Abu Tameem that he heard "Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) say:

I heard the Prophet (๏ทบ) say: โ€œIf you truly put your trust in Allah, He would provide for you as He provides for the birds: they go out with empty stomachs and come back with full stomachs."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 370
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 370

218

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (7163) and Muslim (1045)]

It was narrated that Ibn as Sa"idi al-Maliki said:

"Umar bin al Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) appointed me in charge of the zakah, and when had finished with it and handed it over to him, he ordered that I be given some remuneration. I said: I only did it for the sake of Allah and my reward is with Allah. He said: Take what is given to you. I was appointed to do some work at the time of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) and he gave me some remuneration, and I said the same as you have said, but the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said to me: "If you are given something without asking for it, then take it and give some in charity.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 371
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 371

219

Sahih (Darussalam)

It was narrated from สผUmar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) that he said:

I got excited one day and kissed [my wife] when I was fasting I came to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) and said: Today I have done a horrible thing: I kissed [my wife) when I was fasting. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "What do you think if you rinse your mouth with water when you are fasting?" I said: There is nothing wrong with that. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Then why [are you worried]?โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 372
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 372

220

Sahih hadeeth)

"Abdullah bin Hubairah said: I heard Abu Tameem al-Jaishani say:

I heard "Umar bin al Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) say: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: โ€œIf you really put your trust in Allah, He would provide for you as He provides for the birds. Do you not see that they go out with empty stomachs and come back with full stomachs?โ€œ
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 373
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 373

221

Sahih (Darussalam), Muslim (8)]

It was narrated that Ibn Ya"mar said:

l said to Ibn "Umar. We travel to different countries and we meet people who say there is no qadar (divine decree), Ibn "Umar said: If you meet them, tell them that "Abdullah bin "Umar has nothing to do with them and they have nothing to do with him-three times. Then he started narrating Whilst we were with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , there came a man... and he described his appearance, The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: Come closer, so he came closer. He said: Come closer, so he came closer. He said: Come closer, so he came closer, until his knees were nearly touching [the Prophet (๏ทบ)"s] knees. Then he said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), tell me what is faith [or about faith]. He said: โ€œTo believe in Allah. His Angels, His Books, His Messengers, the Last Day, and to believe in al-qadar." - Sufyan said: I think he said: "... both good and bad." He said: What is Islam? He said: โ€œTo establish prayer, pay zakah, perform pilgrimage to the House, to fast Ramadan and to do ghusl in the case of janabah." For all of that, he [the stranger] said: You are right, you are right. The people said: We never saw any man show more respect to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) than this man did. It was as if he was teaching the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) . Then he said: O Messenger of Allah, tell me about ihsan.He said: โ€œIt is to worship Allah as if you see Him, for even if you do not see Him. He sees you." For all of that we said: We never saw any man show more respect to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) than this man did, he said: You are right, you are right. He said: Tell me about the Hour. He said: โ€œThe one who is asked about it does not know more about it than one who is asking." He said: You are right. He said it several times, and we never saw any man show more respect to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) than this man did. Then he left. Sufyan said: I heard that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œLook for him,โ€ but they did not find him. IIe said: "That was Jihree who came to you to teach you your religion. He never came to me in any form but I recognised him, except for this form.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 374
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 374

222

Sahih (Darussalam) [ like the previous report]

It was narrated that Ibn Yaโ€™mar said:

I asked Ibn "Umar-or a man asked him: We travel in this land and we meet people who say, There is no qadar (divine decree), Ibn "Umar said: If you meet those people, tell them that โ€˜Abdullah bin "Umar has nothing to do with them and they have nothing to do with him - he said it three times. Then he told us. Whilst we were with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), a man came and said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), may I draw closer? He said: "Come closer." So he came a little closer, then he said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), may I come closer? He said: "Come closer.โ€ So he came a little closer, then he said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), may I come closer? He said: "Come closer.โ€ So he came a little closer until his knees were almost touching the knees of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) . Then he said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), what is faith? - and he mentioned a similar report.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 375
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 375

223

Sahih hadeeth]

I: was narrated that โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œWhoever shades the head of a warrior, Allah will shade him on the Day of Resurrection; whoever equips a warrior until he is fully equipped, will have a reward like his; whoever builds a mosque in which the Name of Allah is mentioned. Allah will build for him a house in Paradise.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 376
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 376

224

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (747)]

It was narrated that Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) - "Abdullah said:

My father attributed it to the Prophet (๏ทบ) - said: โ€œWhoever misses any part of his word or portion (of Prayer or Qur"an) at night and reads it between Fair prayer and Zuhr, it will be as if he read it at night."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 377
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 377

225

Sahih (Darussalam) []

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab said:

Before the prohibition of khamr was revealed, โ€˜Umar said: O Allah, give us a clear ruling on khamr. Then the verse which is in Soorat al Baqarah was revealed: "They ask you (O Muhammad (๏ทบ) concerning alcoholic drink and gambling. Say: โ€œIn them is a great sin...โ€ [al-Baqarah 2:219]. "Umar was summoned and it was recited to him. He said: O Allah, give us a clear ruling on khamr, and the verse which is in Soorat an-Nisa" was revealed: โ€œO you who believe Approach not As-Salah (the prayer) when you are in a drunken state." [an-Nisa 4:43). When the Iqamah for prayer was given, the caller of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) would call out: Do not approach the prayer drunk, โ€˜Umar was summoned and it was recited to him. He said: O Allah, give us a clear ruling on khamr, and this verse was revealed then Umar was summoned and recited to hirn when he reached "So, will you not then abstain?" |al-Ma"idah 5:91]. Then "Umar said: We abstain, we abstain.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 378
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 378

226

Sahih (Darussalam) []

It was narrated from Subayy bin Ma"bad that he was a Taghlibi Christian, then he became Muslim and asked which deed is best? He was told:

Jihad for the sake of Allah, may He be glorified and exalted. He wanted to go for jihad. but he was asked: Have you done Hajj? He said. No. It was said to him: Do Hajj and "Umrah, then go for jihad. So he entered ihram for both of them together, then he met Zaid bin Soohan and Salman bin Rabee"ah who said: He is more misguided than his camel, or he is no more guided than his camel, He went to "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) and told him what they had said, and he said: You have been guided to the Sunnah of your Prophet (๏ทบ) , or to the Sunnah of the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) .
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 379
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 379

227

Sahih hadeeth]

It was narrated that Hisham said:

My father told me that โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said to the [Black] Stone; You are only a stone; were it not that I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) kiss you, I would not have kissed you. Then he kissed it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 380
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 380

228

A repeat of the previous report]

It was narrated from Hisham, from his father, that "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) came to the [Black] Stone and said:

I know that you are only a stone and you cannot cause harm or bring benefit. Were it not that I saw the Messenger of Allah(๏ทบ )kiss you, I would not have kissed you. Then he kissed it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 381
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 381

229

Sahih (Darussalam) []

It was narrated from Suwaid bin Ghafalah that

"Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) kissed it and touched it, then he said: I saw Abul-Qasim (๏ทบ) show respect to you - meaning the Black Stone.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 382
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 382

230

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al- Bukhari: {1954} and Muslim [1100)]

It was narrated from "Asim bin "Umar that his father said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œWhen night Comes from here and day departs from here, the fasting person may break his fast."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 383
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 383

231

Sahih hadeeth and its isnad is Hasan, al-Bukhari (1490) and Muslim (1620)]

It was narrated that Umar. (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said. โ€œThe likeness of the one who goes back his charity is that of one who goes back to his vomit.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 384
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 384

232

Sahih (Darussalam) [, al Bukhari and Muslim (1684)

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

The people of Jahiliyyah used not to move on from Jamโ€™ until they said: Shine, Thabeer, so that we may move on quickly. When the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) came, he differed from them and he used to move on from Jamโ€™ before sunrise, like the time when people who delay Fajr usually pray.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 385
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 385

233

Sahih hadeeth and its isnad is Hasan, al-Bukhari (1287) and Muslim (927)]

It was narrated from Ibn Abu Mulaikah, who heard Ibn "Abbas (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) say:

"Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said to me: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: โ€œThe deceased is tormented because of the weeping of his family over him."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 386
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 386

234

Da'if (Darussalam) [ because of the weakness of Asim bin Ubaidullah]

It was narrated that Ibn "Umar said, "Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

l saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) wipe over his leather slippers (khuff, whilst travelling.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 387
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 387

235

Sahih (Darussalam) []

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) that

The Prophet(๏ทบ) used to seek refuge with Allah from miserliness, cowardice, the torment of the grave, the feebleness of old age and diseases of the heart (such as envy, hatred, and wrong โ€˜aqeedah). Wakee" said: And diseases of the heart means dying. Wakee said: And turmoil (fitnah) from which he has not repented.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 388
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 388

236

Sahih hadeeth, al-Bukhari (2643)]

It was narrated that โ€˜Abdullah bin Buraidah said:

"Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) sat where the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) used to sit, in a place where funerals passed by. A funeral passed by and they said good things (about the deceased). He said:lt is due, Then another funeral passed by and they said good things (about the deceased). He said: It is due. Then another funeral passed by and they said good things (about the deceased). He said: It is due, Then another funeral passed by and they said: This man was the most dishonest of people. He said: The most dishonest of people is the one who tells the most lies about Allah, and the next worst is the one who is dishonest with his soul in his body. They said: What do you think if four people testify? He said: It is due. They said: Or three? He said: If they are three, it is due. They said: Or two? He said: It is due, and if I had asked about one, that would have been dearer to me than red camels. It was said to โ€˜Umar: Is this something that you are saying on the basis of your own opinion or is it something that you heard from the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) He said: No, rather it is something that I heard from the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ)
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 389
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 389

237

Sahih Hadeeth]

It was narrated that โ€˜Abayah bin Rifa"ah said:

"Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) heard that when Sa"d built the palace, he said. Now there will be no more noise. โ€˜Umar sent Muhammad bin Maslamah to him, and when he arrived he took out some kindling and lit a fire, and he bought some wood for a dirham. It was said to Sa"d: A man has done such and such. He said: That is Muhammad bin Maslamah. He went out to him and swore by Allah that he never said that. He said: We will convey from you what you have said and we will do as we were instructed. So he burned the door. Then he [Sa"d] offered some supplies (to the envoy) but he refused. He left at midday and went to โ€˜Umar(ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡), and he went and came back within nineteen days. He said: Were it not that I think well of you, I would have thought that you did not convey my message. He said: Yes I did convey it, he conveys his salam and apologises, and he swore by Allah that he did not say that. He said: Did he give you any provisions? He said: No. He said: What prevented you from supplying (sufficient, provisions to me yourself? He said: I did not want to instruct that you be given the cold whilst I had the hot [i.e., I could not have given you what you wanted of food and enjoyed plentiful food myself, when around me are the people of Madinah who are starving, for I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "No man should eat his fill when his neighbour is going without.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 390
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 390

238

Sahih
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽู‡ู’ุฏููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูŽุงุฑูุซูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ู†ูŽุงุณูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุงู…ู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽุตูŽุจู’ู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฎูŽูŠู’ู„ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฑูŽู‚ููŠู‚ู‹ุง ู†ูุญูุจู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ุฒูŽูƒูŽุงุฉูŒ ูˆูŽุทูŽู‡ููˆุฑูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ููŽุนูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽุงุญูุจูŽุงูŠูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ููŠ ููŽุฃูŽูู’ุนูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงุณู’ุชูŽุดูŽุงุฑูŽ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจูŽ ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽูููŠู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ูŒ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ูŒ ู‡ููˆูŽ ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŒ ุฅูู†ู’ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽูƒูู†ู’ ุฌูุฒู’ูŠูŽุฉู‹ ุฑูŽุงุชูุจูŽุฉู‹ ูŠูุคู’ุฎูŽุฐููˆู†ูŽ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏููƒูŽ.

It was narrated that Harithah said:

Some people from Syria came to โ€˜Umar and said: We have acquired wealth and horses and slaves,and we want to pay zakah on them as a purification. He said: I shall do what my two predecessors did. He consulted the Companions of Muhammad (๏ทบ), among whom was โ€˜Ali, and โ€˜Ali said: It is good, provided it does not become a regular tax that is taken from them after you are gone.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 82
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 82

239

Sahih
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูƒูŽู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูˆูŽุงุฆูู„ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุนู’ุจูŽุฏู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู†ูŽุตู’ุฑูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ุชูŽุบู’ู„ูุจููŠู‘ู‹ุง ุฃูŽุนู’ุฑูŽุงุจููŠู‘ู‹ุง ููŽุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽู…ูŽู„ู ุฃูŽูู’ุถูŽู„ู ููŽู‚ููŠู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูู‡ูŽุงุฏู ูููŠ ุณูŽุจููŠู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฑูŽุงุฏูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุฌูŽุงู‡ูุฏูŽ ููŽู‚ููŠู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุฌูŽุฌู’ุชูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ููŽู‚ููŠู„ูŽ ุญูุฌู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุงุนู’ุชูŽู…ูุฑู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฌูŽุงู‡ูุฏู’ ููŽุงู†ู’ุทูŽู„ูŽู‚ูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจูุงู„ู’ุญูŽูˆูŽุงุจูุทู ุฃูŽู‡ูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ุจูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฌูŽู…ููŠุนู‹ุง ููŽุฑูŽุขู‡ู ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุตููˆุญูŽุงู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ู„ูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุฃูŽุถูŽู„ู‘ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูŽู…ูŽู„ูู‡ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู…ูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ุจูุฃูŽู‡ู’ุฏูŽู‰ ู…ูู†ู’ ู†ูŽุงู‚ูŽุชูู‡ู ููŽุงู†ู’ุทูŽู„ูŽู‚ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุจูู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูุฏููŠุชูŽ ู„ูุณูู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ููƒูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูƒูŽู…ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูุฃูŽุจููŠ ูˆูŽุงุฆูู„ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽูƒูŽ ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’.

It was narrated from Abu Wa'il that

as-Subayy bin Ma'bad was a Bedouin Taghlibi Christian who became Muslim. He asked: Which deed is best? He was told: Jihad for the sake of Allah, may He be glorified and exalted. He wanted to go for jihad, but it was said to him: Have you done Hajj? He said no. So it was said to him: Go for Haji and 'Umrah, then go for jihad. So he set out and when he was in al-Hawa'it, he entered ihram for both Haji and 'Umrah together, Zaid bin Soohan and Salman bin Rabee'ah saw him and said: He is more astray than his camel, or he is no more guided than his camel. He went to โ€˜Umar and told him what they had said. He said: You have been guided to the Sunnah of your Prophet (๏ทบ) . Al-Hakam said: I said to Abu Wa'il. Did as-Subayy tell you that? He said: Yes
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 83
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 83

240

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (1684)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑูŽูˆ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูŽูŠู’ู…ููˆู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุจูู†ูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจูุฌูŽู…ู’ุนู ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจู’ุญูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽููŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููŠู†ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ููˆุง ู„ูŽุง ูŠููููŠุถููˆู†ูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽุทู’ู„ูุนูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฎูŽุงู„ูŽููŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽููŽุงุถูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุทู’ู„ูุนูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู.

Amr bin Maimoon said:

โ€˜Umar led us in praying Fajr in Jam', then he stood up and said: The mushrikoon used not to depart until the sun rose, but the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) differed from them and moved on before the sun rose.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 84
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 84

241

Qawi (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒููŠูŽุงุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ูƒูู„ูŽูŠู’ุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ููŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุจูู‡ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุนู’ุฌูŽุจูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฏูŽุนูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุดู’ูŠูŽุงุฎูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฏูŽุนูŽุงู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุชูŽูƒูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ู’ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุชูŽูƒูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ููˆุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฏูŽุนูŽุงู†ูŽุง ุฐูŽุงุชูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุฐูŽุงุชูŽ ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุฉู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูููŠ ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุฏู’ุฑู ู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชูู…ู’ ููŽุงู„ู’ุชูŽู…ูุณููˆู‡ูŽุง ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุดู’ุฑู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽูˆูŽุงุฎูุฑู ูˆูุชู’ุฑู‹ุง ููŽูููŠ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูุชู’ุฑู ุชูŽุฑูŽูˆู’ู†ูŽู‡ูŽุง.

Asim bin Kulaib said:

My father said: I told Ibn 'Abbas and he said: What is so amazing about that? When สผUmar called the prominent shaikhs among the Companions of Muhammad ๏ทบ, he would call me with them and say: Do not speak until they have spoken. He called us one day or one night and said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said about Lailatal-Qadr what you know, so seek it in the odd numbered nights of the last ten nights; on which odd-numbered night do you think it is?
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 85
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 85

242

Dai'f (Darussalam) [ because the man from whom โ€˜Asim bin โ€˜Amr narrated it is unknown]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูŽุงุตูู…ูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุฌูŽู„ููŠู‘ูŽ ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ููˆุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุงูƒูŽ ู†ูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ูููŠ ุจูŽูŠู’ุชูู‡ู ุชูŽุทูŽูˆู‘ูุนู‹ุง ูˆูŽุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุบูุณู’ู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ูŽุงุจูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽุตู’ู„ูุญู ู„ูŽู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุชูู‡ู ุฅูุฐูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ุญูŽุงุฆูุถู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุณูุญู‘ูŽุงุฑูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูู…ู’ ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู…ููˆู†ููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ู…ูŽุง ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ุฐู ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ูููŠ ุจูŽูŠู’ุชูู‡ู ุชูŽุทูŽูˆู‘ูุนู‹ุง ู†ููˆุฑูŒ ููŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุดูŽุงุกูŽ ู†ูŽูˆู‘ูŽุฑูŽ ุจูŽูŠู’ุชูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุบูุณู’ู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ูŽุงุจูŽุฉู ูŠูŽุบู’ุณูู„ู ููŽุฑู’ุฌูŽู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ูŠููููŠุถู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณูู‡ู ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู‹ุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุงุฆูุถู ู„ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ููŽูˆู’ู‚ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฅูุฒูŽุงุฑู.

Shu'bah said:

I heard 'Asim bin 'Amr al-Bajali narrate from one of those who asked โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab. We have come to you to ask you about three things: A man's nafl prayer in his house, Ghusl in the case of janabah, and what it is appropriate for a man to do with his wife when she is menstruating. He said: Are you magicians? You have asked me about something that no one has asked me about since I asked the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) about it, and he said: "A man's nafl prayer in his house is light, so whoever wishes, let him illuminate his house." And he said with regard to ghusl in the case of janabah: "Let him wash his private parts, then do wudoo', then pour water over his head three times." And he said concerning the menstruating woman: "The [Husband may enjoy] whatever is above the izar (waist wrapper)."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 86
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 86

243

Hasan
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‚ูุชูŽูŠู’ุจูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุถู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุณูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูˆูŽู‚ู‘ูŽุงุตู ูŠูŽู…ู’ุณูŽุญู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุจูุงู„ู’ุนูุฑูŽุงู‚ู ุญููŠู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ูƒูŽุฑู’ุชู ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุงุฌู’ุชูŽู…ูŽุนู’ู†ูŽุง ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ููŠ ุณูŽู„ู’ ุฃูŽุจูŽุงูƒูŽ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ูƒูŽุฑู’ุชูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูŽุณู’ุญู ุงู„ู’ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ุชู ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽูƒูŽ ุณูŽุนู’ุฏูŒ ุจูุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุฑูุฏู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽู…ู’ุณูŽุญู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู†ู.

It was narrated from Ibn 'Umar that he said:

I saw Sa'd bin Abi Waqqas wiping over his khuffain in Iraq when he did wudooโ€™ and I objected to that When we met with 'Umar bin al-Khattab, he said to me. Ask your father about what you objected to me doing of wiping over my khuffain, I mentioned that to him and he said: If Sa'd tells you something, do not object to it, for the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) used to wipe over his khuffain.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 87
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 87

244

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Al-Bukhari (202)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุฑููˆู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุนู’ุฑููˆูู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ูˆูŽู‡ู’ุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุงุฑูุซู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุถู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูˆูŽู‚ู‘ูŽุงุตู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุณูŽุญูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽูƒูŽ ุณูŽุนู’ุฏูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุดูŽูŠู’ุฆู‹ุง ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ู’ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated from โ€˜Abdullah bin 'Umar, from Sa'd bin Abi Waqqas

that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) used to wipe over his khuffain. 'Abdullah bin 'Umar asked 'Umar about that and he said: Yes, if Sa'd narrates some-thing to you from the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ), do not ask anyone else about it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 88
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 88

245

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (567)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุนู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุทูŽููŽุงู†ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุนู’ุฏูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูู†ู’ุจูŽุฑู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู ููŽุญูŽู…ูุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุซู’ู†ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูุคู’ูŠูŽุง ู„ูŽุง ุฃูุฑูŽุงู‡ูŽุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู„ูุญูุถููˆุฑู ุฃูŽุฌูŽู„ููŠ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฏููŠูƒู‹ุง ู†ูŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ู†ูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ู„ููŠ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฏููŠูƒูŒ ุฃูŽุญู’ู…ูŽุฑู ููŽู‚ูŽุตูŽุตู’ุชูู‡ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุณู’ู…ูŽุงุกูŽ ุจูู†ู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽูŠู’ุณู ุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุฉู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุชูู„ููƒูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฌูŽู…ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ูŠูŽุฃู’ู…ูุฑููˆู†ูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูููŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽูƒูู†ู’ ู„ููŠูุถูŽูŠู‘ูุนูŽ ุฏููŠู†ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฎูู„ูŽุงููŽุชูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ุจูŽุนูŽุซูŽ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู’ ูŠูŽุนู’ุฌูŽู„ู’ ุจููŠ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑูŒ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ููˆุฑูŽู‰ ูููŠ ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุงู„ุณู‘ูุชู‘ูŽุฉู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุงุชูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุฑูŽุงุถู ููŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุจูŽุงูŠูŽุนู’ุชูู…ู’ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽุงุณู’ู…ูŽุนููˆุง ู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽุทููŠุนููˆุง ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูู†ูŽุงุณู‹ุง ุณูŽูŠูŽุทู’ุนูŽู†ููˆู†ูŽ ูููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงุชูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ุจููŠูŽุฏููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฅูุณู’ู„ูŽุงู…ู ุฃููˆู„ูŽุฆููƒูŽ ุฃูŽุนู’ุฏูŽุงุกู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ูƒููู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุงู„ุถู‘ูู„ู‘ูŽุงู„ู ูˆูŽุงูŠู’ู…ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุชู’ุฑููƒู ูููŠู…ูŽุง ุนูŽู‡ูุฏูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽููŽู†ููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุฆู‹ุง ุฃูŽู‡ูŽู…ู‘ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุงูŠู’ู…ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุบู’ู„ูŽุธูŽ ู„ููŠ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ู…ูู†ู’ุฐู ุตูŽุญูุจู’ุชูู‡ู ุฃูŽุดูŽุฏู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุบู’ู„ูŽุธูŽ ู„ููŠ ูููŠ ุดูŽุฃู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุทูŽุนูŽู†ูŽ ุจูุฅูุตู’ุจูŽุนูู‡ู ูููŠ ุตูŽุฏู’ุฑููŠ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุชูŽูƒู’ูููŠูƒูŽ ุขูŠูŽุฉู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽูŠู’ูู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ูููŠ ุขุฎูุฑู ุณููˆุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุณูŽุงุกู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฅูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุนูุดู’ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู‚ู’ุถููŠ ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ุจูู‚ูŽุถูŽุงุกู ูŠูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ูู‡ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฃูุดู’ู‡ูุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูู…ูŽุฑูŽุงุกู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุจูŽุนูŽุซู’ุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ู„ููŠูุนูŽู„ู‘ูู…ููˆุง ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ุฏููŠู†ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽูŠูุจูŽูŠู‘ูู†ููˆุง ู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุณูู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูู‡ูู…ู’ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽูŠูŽุฑู’ููŽุนููˆุง ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุนูู…ู‘ููŠูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุชูŽุฃู’ูƒูู„ููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุดูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ู„ูŽุง ุฃูุฑูŽุงู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฎูŽุจููŠุซูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ุซู‘ููˆู…ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุจูŽุตูŽู„ู ูˆูŽุงูŠู’ู…ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุฑูŽู‰ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽุฌูุฏู ุฑููŠุญูŽู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ููŽูŠูŽุฃู’ู…ูุฑู ุจูู‡ู ููŽูŠูุคู’ุฎูŽุฐู ุจููŠูŽุฏูู‡ู ููŽูŠูุฎู’ุฑูŽุฌู ุจูู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูุคู’ุชูŽู‰ ุจูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุจูŽู‚ููŠุนูŽ ููŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽูƒูŽู„ูŽู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู„ูŽุง ุจูุฏู‘ูŽ ููŽู„ู’ูŠูู…ูุชู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุทูŽุจู’ุฎู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฃูุตููŠุจูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ุจูุนูŽุงุกู.

It was narrated from Ma'dan bin Abi Talhah

that 'Umar bin al Khattab delivered a khutbah on Friday, and he mentioned the Prophet of Allah ๏ทบ and Abu Bakr ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ . He said: I saw a dream that I can only interpret as meaning that my death is near; I saw as if a rooster pecked me twice, and I was told that it was a red rooster. I told this dream to Asmaโ€™ bint 'Umais, the wife of Abu Bakr , and she said: You will be killed by a Persian man. The people are asking me to appoint a successor, but Allah will not cause His religion and His caliphate, with which He sent His Prophet ๏ทบ to be lost. If death comes to me soon, then the caliphate is to be decided by these six men with whom the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) was pleased when he died. Whichever of them you swear allegiance to, then listen to him and obey. I know that some people will object to this matter. I have fought them with my own hands in the defence of Islam.

They are the enemies of Allah and misguided kafirs. By Allah, I am not leaving behind anything that my Lord instructed me to do and I came to the position of caliphate on that basis that is more important to me than kalalah. By Allah, the Prophet of Allah ๏ทบ never emphasised any issue to me since I accompanied him more than the issue of kalalah, until he poked me in the chest with his finger and said: "Is not ayatas-saif (the verse of summer, i.e., it was revealed in summer), which appears at the end of Sooratan Nisa', sufficient for you?" If I live I will issue a decree that will be so clear that those who read the Qur'an and those who do not read it will be able to make decisions concerning it. I call upon Allah to bear witness over the governors of the regions, for I only sent them to be just and to teach the people their religion and the Sunnah of the Prophet ๏ทบ and to refer to me concerning any difficult matter. O people, you eat two plants which I find to be nothing but repugnant, this onion and garlic. I remember the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ, if he noticed their smell coming from a man in the mosque, he would issue orders that he taken out from the mosque to al-Baqee'. Whoever must eat them, let him cook them to death.โ€

He said: He addressed the people on Friday and was attacked on Wednesday.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 89
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 89

246

Hasan (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2730)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ู‚ููˆุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ู†ูŽุงููุนูŒ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ูˆุงู„ู’ู…ูู‚ู’ุฏูŽุงุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูู†ูŽุง ุจูุฎูŽูŠู’ุจูŽุฑูŽ ู†ูŽุชูŽุนูŽุงู‡ูŽุฏูู‡ูŽุง ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฏูู…ู’ู†ูŽุงู‡ูŽุง ุชูŽููŽุฑู‘ูŽู‚ู’ู†ูŽุง ูููŠ ุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุนูุฏููŠูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุชูŽุญู’ุชูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู†ูŽุงุฆูู…ูŒ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ููุฑูŽุงุดููŠ ููŽููุฏูุนูŽุชู’ ูŠูŽุฏูŽุงูŠูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูุฑู’ููŽู‚ููŠ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽุตู’ุจูŽุญู’ุชู ุงุณู’ุชูุตู’ุฑูุฎูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽุงุญูุจูŽุงูŠูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽูŠูŽุงู†ููŠ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽุงู†ููŠ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽู†ู’ ุตูŽู†ูŽุนูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุจููƒูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฑููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุตู’ู„ูŽุญูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏูู…ููˆุง ุจููŠ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุนูŽู…ูŽู„ู ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฎูŽุทููŠุจู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽุงู…ูŽู„ูŽ ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏูŽ ุฎูŽูŠู’ุจูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽุง ู†ูุฎู’ุฑูุฌูู‡ูู…ู’ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุดูุฆู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽุฏูŽูˆู’ุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽููŽุฏูŽุนููˆุง ูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽูƒูู…ู’ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูŽุฏู’ูˆูŽุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู†ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุง ู†ูŽุดููƒู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจูู‡ูู…ู’ ู„ูŽูŠู’ุณูŽ ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูู†ูŽุงูƒูŽ ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ูŒ ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุงู„ูŒ ุจูุฎูŽูŠู’ุจูŽุฑูŽ ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽู„ู’ุญูŽู‚ู’ ุจูู‡ู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู…ูุฎู’ุฑูุฌูŒ ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฎู’ุฑูŽุฌูŽู‡ูู…ู’.

It was narrated that โ€˜Abdullah bin 'Umar said

az-Zubair, al Miqdad bin al-Aswad and I went out to our property in Khaibar to take care of it. When we got there, we dispersed, each man going to his property. I was attacked under cover of night when I was sleeping on my bed and my arms were dislocated at the elbows. In the morning, my two companions were called and they came and asked me: Who did this to you? l said: I do not know. They treated my arms then they brought me to โ€˜Umar who said: This is the work of some Jews. Then he stood and addressed the people, and said: O people, the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) made a deal with the Jews of Khaibar on the basis that we could expel them whenever we want. They have attacked 'Abdullah bin โ€˜Umar and dislocated his arms, as you heard about their attack on the Ansari before him. We do not doubt that they are the ones who did it, as we have no other enemy but them. Whoever has property in Khaibar, let him go there, for I am going to expel the Jews. Then he expelled them.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 90
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 90

247

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (882) and Muslim (845)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ููˆุณูŽู‰ ูˆูŽุญูุณูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูŽูŠู’ุจูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู‡ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ูŠูŽุฎู’ุทูุจู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู ุฅูุฐู’ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ู„ูู…ูŽ ุชูŽุญู’ุชูŽุจูุณููˆู†ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุฏูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู’ุชู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู’ุถู‹ุง ุฃูŽูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ุชูŽุณู’ู…ูŽุนููˆุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฑูŽุงุญูŽ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏููƒูู…ู’ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽุบู’ุชูŽุณูู„ู’.

It was narrated from Abu Hurairah

that whilst 'Umar bin al-Khattab was delivering the khutbah on Friday, a man came and โ€˜Umar said: Why are you coming late to the prayer? The man said: As soon as I heard the call, I did wudooโ€™. He said: Did you not also hear that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "Before one of you goes to Jumu'ah, let him do ghusl?"
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 91
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 91

248

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (5829) and Muslim (2069)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ููˆุณูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฒูู‡ูŽูŠู’ุฑูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุงุตูู…ูŒ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุญู’ูˆูŽู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽู†ูŽุง ูƒูุชูŽุงุจู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู†ูŽุญู’ู†ู ุจูุฃูŽุฐู’ุฑูŽุจููŠุฌูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ููŽุฑู’ู‚ูŽุฏู ูˆูŽุฅููŠู‘ูŽุงูƒูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุงู„ุชู‘ูŽู†ูŽุนู‘ูู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฒููŠู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูุฑู’ูƒู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุจููˆุณูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽุงู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุจููˆุณู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‡ูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ูˆูŽุฑูŽููŽุนูŽ ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูุตู’ุจูŽุนูŽูŠู’ู‡ู.

It was narrated that Abu 'Uthman said:

A letter came to us from โ€˜Umar when we were in Azerbaijan (in which it said): O 'Utbah bin Farqad, beware of luxury, the clothing of the mushrikeen and wearing silk, for the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) forbade us to wear silk and said, โ€œExcept this much," and the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) held up two fingers to us.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 92
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 92

249

Da'if (Darussalam) [because of the weakness of Ibn Lahee'ah and Muhammad bin 'Abdur-Rahman bin Labeebah
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽุจููŠุจูŽุฉูŽ ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุณูู†ูŽุงู†ู ุงู„ุฏู‘ูุคูŽู„ููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ู†ูŽููŽุฑูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูู‡ูŽุงุฌูุฑููŠู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ููŠู†ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฑู’ุณูŽู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุณูŽููŽุทู ุฃูุชููŠูŽ ุจูู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ู‚ูŽู„ู’ุนูŽุฉู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูุฑูŽุงู‚ู ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูููŠู‡ู ุฎูŽุงุชูŽู…ูŒ ููŽุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐูŽู‡ู ุจูŽุนู’ุถู ุจูŽู†ููŠู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุฏู’ุฎูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ูููŠ ูููŠู‡ู ููŽุงู†ู’ุชูŽุฒูŽุนูŽู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุจูŽูƒูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ู„ูู…ูŽ ุชูŽุจู’ูƒููŠ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ููŽุชูŽุญูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุธู’ู‡ูŽุฑูŽูƒูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ููƒูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู‚ูŽุฑู‘ูŽ ุนูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽูƒูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽุง ุชููู’ุชูŽุญู ุงู„ุฏู‘ูู†ู’ูŠูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฏูŽุงูˆูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุจูŽุบู’ุถูŽุงุกูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ู‚ููŠูŽุงู…ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูุดู’ููู‚ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ.

It was narrated from Abu Sinan al-Du'ali

that he entered upon 'Umar bin al-Khattab with whom there was a group of the earliest Muhajireen, 'Umar sent for a basket that had been brought to him from Iraq, in which there was a ring. One of his sons took it and put it in his mouth. โ€˜Umar took it from him, then 'Umar wept and those who were with him said: Why are you weeping when Allah has granted victory to you and caused you to prevail over your enemies and granted you joy? 'Umar said: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: "Accumulation of worldly luxuries does not become available to any people but Allah, may He Be glorified and exalted, stirs up among them enmity and hatred until the Day of Resurrection, and that concerns me."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 93
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 93

250

Hasan
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ู‚ููˆุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ู†ูŽุงููุนูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽูŠู’ููŽ ูŠูŽุตู’ู†ูŽุนู ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู†ูŽุง ุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ุฃูŽุฌู’ู†ูŽุจูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุฑูŽุงุฏูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู†ูŽุงู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุบู’ุชูŽุณูู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ููŠูŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู’ ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽู‡ู ู„ูู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู„ููŠูŽู†ูŽู…ู’.

It was narrated from 'Abdullah bin 'Umar, that his father said:

I asked the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) what one of us should do if he becomes junub then wants to sleep before doing ghusl. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œLet him do wudoo' as for prayer, then he may go to sleep."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 94
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 94

251

Hasan (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1366)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ู‚ููˆุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุณู’ุนููˆุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุชููˆููู‘ููŠูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ุฏูุนููŠูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽููŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูŠูุฑููŠุฏู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉูŽ ุชูŽุญูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ู’ุชู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู‚ูู…ู’ุชู ูููŠ ุตูŽุฏู’ุฑูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุงุฆูู„ู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ูŠูุนูŽุฏู‘ูุฏู ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูŽุงู…ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽุชูŽุจูŽุณู‘ูŽู…ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽูƒู’ุซูŽุฑู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู‘ูุฑู’ ุนูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ูŠูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฎููŠู‘ูุฑู’ุชู ููŽุงุฎู’ุชูŽุฑู’ุชู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู‚ููŠู„ูŽ [[[{ ุงุณู’ุชูŽุบู’ููุฑู’ ู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุณู’ุชูŽุบู’ููุฑู’ ู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุฅูู†ู’ ุชูŽุณู’ุชูŽุบู’ููุฑู’ ู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุณูŽุจู’ุนููŠู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ููŽู„ูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุบู’ููุฑูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ }]]] ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุฅูู†ู’ ุฒูุฏู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุจู’ุนููŠู†ูŽ ุบูููุฑูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุฒูุฏู’ุชู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุดูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุจู’ุฑูู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ููุฑูุบูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุนูŽุฌูŽุจูŒ ู„ููŠ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽุงุกูŽุชููŠ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ูŠูŽุณููŠุฑู‹ุง ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ู‡ูŽุงุชูŽุงู†ู ุงู„ู’ุขูŠูŽุชูŽุงู†ู [[[{ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุตูŽู„ู‘ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ู…ูŽุงุชูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุฏู‹ุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽู‚ูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุจู’ุฑูู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูƒูŽููŽุฑููˆุง ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุงุชููˆุง ูˆูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽุงุณูู‚ููˆู†ูŽ }]]] ููŽู…ูŽุง ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู…ูู†ูŽุงููู‚ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุจู’ุฑูู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุจูŽุถูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ.

It was narrated that 'Abdullah bin 'Abbas said:

I heard 'Umar bin al-Khattab say: When โ€˜Abdullah bin Ubayy died, the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ was called to offer the funeral prayer for him, and when he stood by the deceased and was about to offer the prayer for him. I went and stood before him and said: O Messenger of Allah, (will you offer the funeral prayer) for the enemy of Allah who said such and such? and I listed what he had done. And the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ was smiling until when I had said too much, he said: "Move away from me, O โ€˜Umar, for I was given the choice and I have chosen. It was said: "Whether you (O Muhammad) ask forgiveness for them (hypocrites) or ask not forgiveness for them- (and even) if you ask seventy times for their forgiveness-Allah will not forgive them' [at-Tawbah 9:80]. If I knew that by asking for forgiveness more than seventy times they would be forgiven, I would have done that." He said: Then he offered the funeral prayer for him, and walked with him (his bier), and stood by his grave until the burial was completed. He said: I was astounded that I had spoken so audaciously to the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ; Allah and His Messenger know best. By Allah, it was not long before these two verses were revealed: โ€œAnd never (O Muhammad pray (funeral prayer) for any of them (hypocrites) who dies, nor stand at his grave. Certainly they disbelieved in Allah and His Messenger, and died while they were Fasiqoon (rebellious, - disobedient to AIlah and His Messenger)."[at-Tawbah9:84]. So after that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ did not offer the funeral prayer for any hypocrite or stand by his grave until he passed away.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 95
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 95

252

Hasan
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ู‚ููˆุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู†ูŽุงููุนูŒ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุงู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูุฐูŽุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽูƒูู†ู’ ู„ูู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุซูŽูˆู’ุจูŒ ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏูŒ ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽุฃู’ุชูŽุฒูุฑู’ ุจูู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู„ููŠูุตูŽู„ู‘ู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูˆูŽูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽู„ู’ุชูŽุญููููˆุง ุจูุงู„ุซู‘ูŽูˆู’ุจู ุฅูุฐูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุญู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุชูŽูู’ุนูŽู„ู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุงููุนูŒ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุณู’ู†ูŽุฏูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽูˆู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ูƒูŽุฐูŽุจู’ุชู.

Abdullah bin 'Umar used to say:

If a man has only one garment, let him wrap it around his waist and then pray, for I heard 'Umar bin al-Khattab say that, and he said: Do not wrap it around the whole body if it is only one garment, as the Jews do. Nati' said: If I tell you that he attributed that to the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ, I hope that I would not be lying.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 96
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 96

253

[Hasan lighairihi; this isnad is da'eef}
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุคูŽู…ู‘ูŽู„ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฏูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฒููŠูŽุงุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุฎู’ุฑูŽุงู‚ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูŽู‡ู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู‚ู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุงุชูŽ ูŠูุคู’ู…ูู†ู ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑู ู‚ููŠู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุงุฏู’ุฎูู„ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ู ุฃูŽุจู’ูˆูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽู…ูŽุงู†ููŠูŽุฉู ุดูุฆู’ุชูŽ.

It was narrated that โ€˜Uqbah bin โ€˜Amir said:

Umar told me that he heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบsay: โ€œWhoever dies believing in Allah and the Last Day, it will said to him: โ€˜Enter Paradise from whichever of the eight gates of Paradise you wish."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 97
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 97

254

Hasan lighairihi, and in its isnad is interrupt]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑูŒ ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุญู’ู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูุทูŽุฑู‘ููู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูƒูŽู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูุฌูŽุงู‡ูุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฐูŽููŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ุงุจู’ู†ู‹ุง ู„ูŽู‡ู ุจูุณูŽูŠู’ูู ููŽู‚ูŽุชูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽุฑูููุนูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽุง ูŠูู‚ูŽุงุฏู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูุฏู ู…ูู†ู’ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุฏูู‡ู ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุชูŽู„ู’ุชููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุจู’ุฑูŽุญูŽ.

It was narrated that Mujahid said:

A man struck a son of his with a sword and killed him. The matter was referred to 'Umar and he said. Were it not that I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say, โ€œNo father should be executed in retaliation for killing his son." I would have executed you before you left.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 98
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 98

255

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (1597) and Muslim (1270)].
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฒูู‡ูŽูŠู’ุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุจูุณู ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู†ูŽุธูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ููƒูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ู’ุชููƒูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated that 'Abis bin Rabee'ah said:

I saw 'Umar look at the Black Stone and say: By Allah, were it not that I saw the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ kiss you, I would not have kissed you. Then he kissed it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 99
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 99

256

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (7163) and Muslim (1045)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุงุฆูุจู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูุฎู’ุชู ู†ูŽู…ูุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุญููˆูŽูŠู’ุทูุจูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ุนูุฒู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุนู’ุฏูู‰ู‘ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุฏูู…ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูููŠ ุฎูู„ูŽุงููŽุชูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซู’ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุชูŽู„ููŠ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุงู„ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุงู„ู‹ุง ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฃูุนู’ุทููŠุชูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูู…ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉูŽ ูƒูŽุฑูู‡ู’ุชูŽู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุจูŽู„ูŽู‰ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู…ูŽุง ุชูุฑููŠุฏู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ู„ููŠ ุฃูŽูู’ุฑูŽุงุณู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽุนู’ุจูุฏู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุจูุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุฃูุฑููŠุฏู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุงู„ูŽุชููŠ ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุฉู‹ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููŠู†ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽูู’ุนูŽู„ู’ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุฑูŽุฏู’ุชู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ุฃูŽุฑูŽุฏู’ุชูŽ ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูุนู’ุทููŠู†ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุทูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽุฃูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฃูŽุนู’ุทูู‡ู ุฃูŽูู’ู‚ูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู…ูู†ู‘ููŠ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุนู’ุทูŽุงู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ู…ูŽุงู„ู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุนู’ุทูู‡ู ุฃูŽูู’ู‚ูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู…ูู†ู‘ููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฎูุฐู’ู‡ู ููŽุชูŽู…ูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูŽุตูŽุฏู‘ูŽู‚ู’ ุจูู‡ู ููŽู…ูŽุง ุฌูŽุงุกูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู„ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู…ูุดู’ุฑููู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุณูŽุงุฆูู„ู ููŽุฎูุฐู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ู„ูŽุง ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุชู’ุจูุนู’ู‡ู ู†ูŽูู’ุณูŽูƒูŽ.

It was narrated from 'Abdullah bin as-Sa'di

that he came to 'Umar bin al-Khattab during his caliphate and 'Umar said to him: Was I not told that you do work for people, then when you are given your wages you do not accept it? I said: Yes. "Umar said: Why do you do that? I said: I have horses and slaves, and I am well off. I want my work to be an act of charity towards the Muslims. 'Umar said: Do not do that, for I wanted to do the same as you want to do. The Prophet ๏ทบ would give me some payment and I would say: Give it to one who is more in need of it than me. One day he gave me something and I said: Give it to one who is more in need of it than me. The Prophet ๏ทบ said: "Take it, keep it, and give it in charity, Whatever of this wealth comes to you when you are not hoping for it or asking for it, accept it, but if it does not come to you, do not hope for it.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 100
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 100

257

Da'if
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูŽูƒูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู†ูŽุงููุนู ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุงู‡ูู„ููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุตูŽุงู„ูุญูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุฌู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุทูŽุงู„ูุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุณูŽุจู‘ูŽุญูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุตู’ุฑู ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ูููŠ ุทูŽุฑููŠู‚ู ู…ูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ููŽุฑูŽุขู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุชูŽุบูŽูŠู‘ูŽุธูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง.

Rabee'ah bin Darraj narrated

that 'Ali bin Abi Talib prayed two naft rak'ahs after โ€˜Asr on the road to Makkah, and 'Umar saw him and got angry with him, then he said: By Allah, I am certain that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ forbade that.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 101
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 101

258

[Da'if (Darussalam) because the man of Banu Sahm is unknown!
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุนูŽู„ูŽุงุกู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุนู’ู‚ููˆุจูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ู‚ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุดู ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽู†ููŠ ุณูŽู‡ู’ู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ูŠูู‚ูŽุงู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุงุฌูุฏูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽุงุฑูŽู…ู’ุชู ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ู‹ุง ุจูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ููŽุนูŽุถู‘ูŽ ุฃูุฐูู†ููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุทูŽุนูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุนูŽุถูุถู’ุชู ุฃูุฐูู†ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุทูŽุนู’ุชู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฏูู…ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุญูŽุงุฌู‘ู‹ุง ุฑูููุนู’ู†ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู†ู’ุทูŽู„ูู‚ููˆุง ุจูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุงุฑูุญู ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูู‚ู’ุชูŽุตู‘ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุชูŽุตู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุงู†ู’ุชูู‡ููŠูŽ ุจูู†ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู†ูŽุธูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูู‚ู’ุชูŽุตู‘ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ุงุฏู’ุนููˆุง ู„ููŠ ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽุงู…ู‹ุง ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽุงู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽุนู’ุทูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฎูŽุงู„ูŽุชููŠ ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฑู’ุฌููˆ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุจูŽุงุฑููƒูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽู‡ูŽุง ูููŠู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽูŠู’ุชูู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุฌู’ุนูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽุงู…ู‹ุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูŽุตู‘ูŽุงุจู‹ุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุตูŽุงุฆูุบู‹ุง ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ู‚ููˆุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽู„ูŽุงุกู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽู†ููŠ ุณูŽู‡ู’ู…ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุงุฌูุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽู‡ู’ู…ููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูููŠ ุฎูู„ูŽุงููŽุชูู‡ู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏููŠุซูŽ.

It was narrated from a man of Quraish from Banu Sahm,

that a man among them who was called Majidah said: I had a fight with a slave and he bit my ear and took a piece out of it, or I bit his ear and took a piece out of it. When Abu Bakr came to us for Hajj, our case was referred to him, and he said: Take them to 'Umar bin al-Khattab, and if the one who caused the injury has reached puberty, let retaliation be taken. When we were brought to โ€˜Umar, he examined us and said: Yes, this one has reached the age where retaliation may be sought. Call a cupper for me. When he mentioned the cupper, he said: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: "I gave a slave to my maternal aunt and I hope that Allah will bless him for her, and I told her not to let him be a cupper, a butcher or a goldsmith.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 102
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 102

259

[Da'if (Darussalam)like the hadeeth above].

It was narrated from a man from Banu Sahm, from Ibn Majidah as-Sahmi, that he said:

Abu Bakr led us on Hajj, during his caliphate, and he mentioned the same hadeeth.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 103
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 103

260

Sahih (Darussalam), Muslim (1217)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจููŠุฏูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู‡ูู†ู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู†ูŽุถู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุฎู‘ูŽุตูŽ ู„ูู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุดูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู…ูŽุถูŽู‰ ู„ูุณูŽุจููŠู„ูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุชูู…ู‘ููˆุง ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุญูŽุตู‘ูู†ููˆุง ููุฑููˆุฌูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุณูŽุงุกู.

It was narrated that Abu Sa'eed said:

โ€˜Umar addressed the people and said: Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, granted whatever concessions. He willed to His Prophet ๏ทบ, and the Prophet of Allah ๏ทบ has passed away, so complete Hajj and 'Umrah as Allah has commanded you, and guard the chastity of these women.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 104
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 104

261

Sahih
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจููŠุฏูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุงููุนู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูุฆูู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠูŽุฑู’ู‚ูุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽุฌู’ู†ูŽุจูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ.

It was narrated from Ibn 'Umar, that 'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said:

The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ was asked: Can a man go to sleep when he is junub? He said: "Yes, if he does wudooโ€™."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 105
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 105

262

[lts isnad is da'eef because it is interrupted]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุจูŽุงุฑูŽูƒู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฏูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุฌู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุตู’ุฑู ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ููŽุชูŽุบูŽูŠู‘ูŽุธูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุงู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง.

It was narrated from Rabee'ah bin Darraj,

that 'Ali ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ prayed two rakสผahs after โ€˜Asr, and โ€˜Umar got angry with him and said: Don't you know that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ used to forbid this?
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 106
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 106

263

Dai'f (Darussalam) [ because it is interrupted]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุบููŠุฑูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุตูŽูู’ูˆูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุฑูŽูŠู’ุญู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌู’ุชู ุฃูŽุชูŽุนูŽุฑู‘ูŽุถู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูุณู’ู„ูู…ูŽ ููŽูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ุชูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุณูŽุจูŽู‚ูŽู†ููŠ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู ููŽู‚ูู…ู’ุชู ุฎูŽู„ู’ููŽู‡ู ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽูู’ุชูŽุญูŽ ุณููˆุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุงู‚ู‘ูŽุฉู ููŽุฌูŽุนูŽู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุนู’ุฌูŽุจู ู…ูู†ู’ ุชูŽุฃู’ู„ููŠูู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุดูŽุงุนูุฑูŒ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ู‚ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุดูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽ [[[{ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ูƒูŽุฑููŠู…ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ุจูู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ู ุดูŽุงุนูุฑู ู‚ูŽู„ููŠู„ู‹ุง ู…ูŽุง ุชูุคู’ู…ูู†ููˆู†ูŽ }]]] ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูƒูŽุงู‡ูู†ูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ [[[{ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุจูู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ู ูƒูŽุงู‡ูู†ู ู‚ูŽู„ููŠู„ู‹ุง ู…ูŽุง ุชูŽุฐูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฑููˆู†ูŽ ุชูŽู†ู’ุฒููŠู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฑูŽุจู‘ู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุงู„ูŽู…ููŠู†ูŽ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ ุชูŽู‚ูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ุจูŽุนู’ุถูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู‚ูŽุงูˆููŠู„ู ู„ูŽุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ุจูุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ููŠู†ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุทูŽุนู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุชููŠู†ูŽ ููŽู…ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู…ู’ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุญูŽุงุฌูุฒููŠู†ูŽ }]]] ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุขุฎูุฑู ุงู„ุณู‘ููˆุฑูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽูˆูŽู‚ูŽุนูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฅูุณู’ู„ูŽุงู…ู ูููŠ ู‚ูŽู„ู’ุจููŠ ูƒูู„ู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู‚ูุนู.

Shuraih bin 'Ubaid narrated that 'Umar bin al-Khattab .ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said:

I went out looking for the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ before I became Muslim, and I found that he had reached the mosque before me. I stood behind him and he started to recite Sooratal-Haqqah, and I was amazed by the way in which the Qur'an was composed. I said: By Allah, this man is a poet as Quraish said. Then he recited: "That this is verily, the word of an honoured Messenger [i.e. Jibreel (Gabriel) or Muhammad which he has brought from Allah]. It is not the word of a poet, little is that you believe!โ€ [al-Haqqah 69:40-41]. I said: (He is a) soothsayer. He said: โ€œNor is it the word of a soothsayer (or a foreteller), little is that you remember! This is the Revelation sent down from the Lord of the 'Alameen (mankind, jinn and all that exists). And if he (Muhammad ๏ทบ) had forged a false saying concerning Us (Allah). We surely would have seized him by his right hand (or with power and might), And then We certainly would have cut off his life artery (aorta), And none of you could have withheld Us from (punishing) him...โ€ [al-Haqqah 69:42โ€”47]. lle said: Then I felt an overwhelming attraction to Islam.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 107
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 107

264

Hasan lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุบููŠุฑูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุนูุตูŽุงู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฎูŽุงู„ูุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุตูŽูู’ูˆูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูุฑูŽูŠู’ุญู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุงุดูุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ูˆูŽุบูŽูŠู’ุฑูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุณูŽุฑูŽุบูŽ ุญูุฏู‘ูุซูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุจูุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุงู…ู ูˆูŽุจูŽุงุกู‹ ุดูŽุฏููŠุฏู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุดูุฏู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุจูŽุงุกู ูููŠ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุงู…ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฅูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฑูŽูƒูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุฌูŽู„ููŠ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุญู ุญูŽูŠู‘ูŒ ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽูู’ุชูู‡ู ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูู…ูŽ ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽูู’ุชูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽุฉู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽูƒูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ู„ููƒูู„ู‘ู ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู…ููŠู†ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽู…ููŠู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุญู ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ู…ูŽุง ุจูŽุงู„ู ุนูู„ู’ูŠูŽุง ู‚ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุดู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููˆู†ูŽ ุจูŽู†ููŠ ููู‡ู’ุฑู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฑูŽูƒูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุฌูŽู„ููŠ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุชููˆููู‘ููŠูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽูู’ุชู ู…ูุนูŽุงุฐูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฌูŽุจูŽู„ู ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽู†ููŠ ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ู„ูู…ูŽ ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽูู’ุชูŽู‡ู ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽูƒูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูุญู’ุดูŽุฑู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ููŠูŽุงู…ูŽุฉู ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูู„ูŽู…ูŽุงุกู ู†ูŽุจู’ุฐูŽุฉู‹.

It was narrated from Shuraih bin 'Ubaid and Rashid bin Saสผd and others

that when โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab reached Sargh, he was told that there was a widespread plague in Syria. He said: I have heard that there is a severe plague in Syria. I said: If my time comes, and Abu โ€˜Ubaidah bin al-Jarrah is still alive, I appoint him as my successor, And if Allah asks me why I appointed him as my successor to lead the ummah of Muhammad ๏ทบ , I will say: I heard Your Messenger ๏ทบ say: "Every Prophet has a close confidant and my close confidant is Abu 'Ubaidah bin al-Jarrah." The people objected to that, and said: What about the prominent figures of Quraish? meaning Banu Fihr. Then he said: If my time comes, and Abu 'Ubaidah has died, then I appoint Mu'adh bin Jabal as my successor, and if my Lord, may He be glorified and exalted, asks me why I appointed him as my successor, I will say: I heard Your Messenger say:"He will be gathered on the Day of Resurrection as a leader of scholars."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 108
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 108

265

Daif
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุบููŠุฑูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูŠู‘ูŽุงุดู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽูˆู’ุฒูŽุงุนููŠู‘ู ูˆูŽุบูŽูŠู’ุฑูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูู„ูุฏูŽ ู„ูุฃูŽุฎููŠ ุฃูู…ู‘ู ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุฒูŽูˆู’ุฌู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ูŒ ููŽุณูŽู…ู‘ูŽูˆู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ููŠุฏูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุณูŽู…ู‘ูŽูŠู’ุชูู…ููˆู‡ู ุจูุฃูŽุณู’ู…ูŽุงุกู ููŽุฑูŽุงุนูู†ูŽุชููƒูู…ู’ ู„ูŽูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ูููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽุฉู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ูŠูู‚ูŽุงู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ููŠุฏู ู„ูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุดูŽุฑู‘ูŒ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽุฉู ู…ูู†ู’ ููุฑู’ุนูŽูˆู’ู†ูŽ ู„ูู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ูู‡ู.

It was narrated from Sa'eed bin al-Musayyab that 'Umar bin al-Khattab said:

A boy was born to the brother of Umm Salamah, the wife of the Prophet ๏ทบ and they called him al-Waleed. The Prophet ๏ทบ said: โ€œYou have called him by the name of your pharaoh, for there will be among this ummah a man who is called al-Waleed and he will be worse to them than Pharaoh was to his people.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 109
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 109

266

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (581) and Muslim (826)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุจูŽู‡ู’ุฒูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจูู‰ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุงู„ููŠูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุดูŽู‡ูุฏูŽ ุนูู†ู’ุฏููŠ ุฑูุฌูŽุงู„ูŒ ู…ูŽุฑู’ุถููŠู‘ููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ูˆูŽุฃูŽุฑู’ุถูŽุงู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูู†ู’ุฏููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽุง ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุตู’ุฑู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽุบู’ุฑูุจูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจู’ุญู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽุทู’ู„ูุนูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู.

It was narrated that Ibn โ€˜Abbas said:

Some men of good character, among whom was โ€˜Umar, testified before me, and the best of them in my view was โ€˜Umar, that the Prophet of Allah ๏ทบ used to say: "There is no prayer after 'Asr prayer until the sun sets, and there is no prayer after Fajr prayer until the sun rises."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 110
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 110

267

Hasan
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุบููŠุฑูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุตูŽูู’ูˆูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ู†ูููŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุงุฑูุซู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุนูŽุงูˆููŠูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ูƒูู†ู’ุฏููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฑูŽูƒูุจูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ุฎูู„ูŽุงู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุฏูู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉูŽ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุฏูŽู…ูŽูƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูุฃูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ูŽูƒูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ุฎูู„ูŽุงู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูุจู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฑู’ุฃูŽุฉู ูููŠ ุจูู†ูŽุงุกู ุถูŽูŠู‘ูู‚ู ููŽุชูŽุญู’ุถูุฑู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‡ููŠูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ุจูุญูุฐูŽุงุฆููŠ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู’ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽุชู’ ุฎูŽู„ู’ูููŠ ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุชู’ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุจูู†ูŽุงุกู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุชูŽุณู’ุชูุฑู ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุจูุซูŽูˆู’ุจู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุชูุตูŽู„ู‘ููŠ ุจูุญูุฐูŽุงุฆููƒูŽ ุฅูู†ู’ ุดูุฆู’ุชูŽ ูˆูŽุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุตู’ุฑู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽุงู†ููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุตูŽุตู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุฃูŽุฑูŽุงุฏููˆู†ููŠ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุตูŽุตู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุดูุฆู’ุชูŽ ูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูƒูŽุฑูู‡ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู…ู’ู†ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฑูŽุฏู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽู‡ููŠูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุดูŽู‰ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽู‚ูุตู‘ูŽ ููŽุชูŽุฑู’ุชูŽููุนูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ูููŠ ู†ูŽูู’ุณููƒูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุชูŽู‚ูุตู‘ูŽ ููŽุชูŽุฑู’ุชูŽููุนูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูุฎูŽูŠู‘ูŽู„ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ููŽูˆู’ู‚ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุจูู…ูŽู†ู’ุฒูู„ูŽุฉู ุงู„ุซู‘ูุฑูŽูŠู‘ูŽุง ููŽูŠูŽุถูŽุนูŽูƒูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุญู’ุชูŽ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุฏูŽุงู…ูู‡ูู…ู’ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ููŠูŽุงู…ูŽุฉู ุจูู‚ูŽุฏู’ุฑู ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ.

It was narrated from al-Harith bin Mu'awiyah al-Kindi,

that he travelled to meet โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab and ask him about three things. He came to Madinah and โ€˜Umar asked him: What brought you here? He said: (I came) to ask you about three things. He said: What are they? He said: A woman and I may be in a confined space and the time for prayer comes, but if we both pray she will be standing next to me, and if she prays behind me she will have to go out of the space, โ€˜Umar said: Put a cloth to serve as a screen between you and her, and let her pray alongside you if you wish. (And I asked) about the two rak'ahs after 'Asr and he said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ told me not to do them. He said: (And I asked) about stories (for preaching), because they wanted me to tell them stories. He said: Whatever you want. It was as if he did not want to tell him not to do that. He said: I only wanted to follow what you say. He said: I am afraid that if you tell them stories (for preaching), you will think that you are better than them, then you will tell them stories and think that you are better than them, until you imagine that you are as far above them as the Pleiades, then Allah will put you that far beneath their feet on the Day of Resurrection.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 111
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 111

268

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (6647) and Muslim (1646)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุจูุดู’ุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุญูŽู…ู’ุฒูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุงูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุญู’ู„ููููˆุง ุจูุขุจูŽุงุฆููƒูู…ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุญูŽู„ูŽูู’ุชู ุจูู‡ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ุฐู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽูƒูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ู’ุชู ุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฐูŽุงูƒูุฑู‹ุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุขุซูุฑู‹ุง.

Abdullah bin 'Umar narrated that 'Umar bin al-Khattab said:

I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: โ€œAllah, may He be glorified and exalted, forbids you to swear by your fathers," 'Umar said: By Allah, I never swore by them since I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ forbid it, and I never uttered (such words) whether I was swearing an oath or describing someone else doing so.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 112
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 112

269

[Sahih lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุงุดูุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุญูุฐูŽูŠู’ููŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽุฃู’ุฎูุฐู’ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽูŠู’ู„ู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽู‚ููŠู‚ู ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุฉู‹.

It was narrated from สผUmar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ and Hudhaifah bin al-Yaman ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡

that the Prophet ๏ทบ did not take zakah on horses or slaves.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 113
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 113

270

Sahih
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุจูŽุงุฑูŽูƒู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณููˆู‚ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏููŠู†ูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ุจูุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุงุจููŠูŽุฉู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ูููŠู†ูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูุซู’ู„ูŽ ู…ูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ููŠ ูููŠูƒูู…ู’ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุณู’ุชูŽูˆู’ุตููˆุง ุจูุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจููŠ ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ูŠูŽู„ููˆู†ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ูŠูŽู„ููˆู†ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽูู’ุดููˆ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽุฐูุจู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ูŽ ู„ูŽูŠูŽุจู’ุชูŽุฏูุฆู ุจูุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุณู’ุฃูŽู„ูŽู‡ูŽุง ููŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฑูŽุงุฏูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู…ู’ ุจูŽุญู’ุจูŽุญูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽู„ู’ุฒูŽู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู…ูŽุงุนูŽุฉูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽูŠู’ุทูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏู ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ูุงุซู’ู†ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจู’ุนูŽุฏู ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฎู’ู„ููˆูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏููƒูู…ู’ ุจูุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุฉู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽูŠู’ุทูŽุงู†ูŽ ุซูŽุงู„ูุซูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุฑู‘ูŽุชู’ู‡ู ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŽุชูู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽุงุกูŽุชู’ู‡ู ุณูŽูŠู‘ูุฆูŽุชูู‡ู ููŽู‡ููˆูŽ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ.

It was narrated from Ibn 'Umar that 'Umar bin al-Khattab addressed us in al-Jabiyah, and said:

The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ stood before us as I am standing before you, and said: "I urge you to show respect to my Companions, then those who come after them, then those who come after them, then lying will become so widespread that a man will start to give testimony before he is asked to do so.Whoever among you wants to attain a spacious abode in Paradise, let him adhere to the jama'ah (main body of Muslims), for the Shaitan is with the one who is alone, but he is further away from two. And no one of you should be alone with a woman for the Shaitan will be the third one present. The one who is pleased with his good deeds and upset by his bad deeds is a believer."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 114
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 114

271

[Da'if (Darussalam)because it is interrupted]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูŽูƒููŠู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุถูŽู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุญูŽุจููŠุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุฑู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู†ู’ุธูุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู‡ูŽุฏู’ูŠู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽู†ู’ุธูุฑู’ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู‡ูŽุฏู’ูŠู ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู.

Hakeem bin 'Umair and Damrah bin Habeeb said:

Umar bin al-Khattab said: Whoever would like to see the way of the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ, let him look at the way of 'Amr bin al Aswad.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 115
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 115

272

[Sahih lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุจูŽู†ููŠ ู‡ูŽุงุดูู…ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฒูŽุงุฆูุฏูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูู…ูŽุงูƒูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนููƒู’ุฑูู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุฑูŽูƒู’ุจู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุญู’ู„ููููˆุง ุจูุขุจูŽุงุฆููƒูู…ู’ ููŽุงู„ู’ุชูŽููŽุชู‘ู ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ.

It was narrated that Ibn 'Abbas said: 'Umar said:

We were with the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ on a journey and a man said: No, by my father. Another man said: โ€œDo not swear by your fathers." I turned and saw that it was the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 116
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 116

273

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1399) and Muslim (20))
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูุตูŽุงู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฎูŽุงู„ูุฏู ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุญูŽู…ู’ุฒูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุณู’ุนููˆุฏู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ู‡ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุชููˆููู‘ููŠูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽูƒูŽููŽุฑูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽููŽุฑูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฑูŽุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูƒูŽูŠู’ููŽ ุชูู‚ูŽุงุชูู„ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูู…ูุฑู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูู‚ูŽุงุชูู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ููˆุง ู„ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‡ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‡ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽุตูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูู†ู‘ููŠ ู…ูŽุงู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู†ูŽูู’ุณูŽู‡ู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุจูุญูŽู‚ู‘ูู‡ู ูˆูŽุญูุณูŽุงุจูู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุฃูู‚ูŽุงุชูู„ูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ู„ูŽุฃูŽู‚ู’ุชูู„ูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ููŽุฑู‘ูŽู‚ูŽ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฒู‘ูŽูƒูŽุงุฉู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูŽูƒูŽุงุฉูŽ ุญูŽู‚ู‘ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู„ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ู…ูŽู†ูŽุนููˆู†ููŠ ุนูŽู†ูŽุงู‚ู‹ุง ูƒูŽุงู†ููˆุง ูŠูุคูŽุฏู‘ููˆู†ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุงุชูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽู†ู’ุนูู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุดูŽุฑูŽุญูŽ ุตูŽุฏู’ุฑูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู„ูู„ู’ู‚ูุชูŽุงู„ู ููŽุนูŽุฑูŽูู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู‚ู‘ู.

Ubaidullah bin โ€˜Abdullah bin 'Utbah bin Mas'ood told us that Abu Hurairah said:

When the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ died and Abu Bakr ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ became (caliph) after him, and some of the Arabs apostatized,สปUmar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said: O Abu Bakr, how can you fight the people when the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "I have been ordered to fight the people until they bear witness that there is no god except Allah. Whoever bears witness that there is no god except Allah has protected his wealth and his life from me, except in cases dictated by Islamic law, and their reckoning will be with Allah"? Abu Bakr ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said: by Allah I shall certainly fight the one who separates prayer and zakah, for zakah is what is due from wealth. By Allah, whoever withholds from me a goat that they used to give (in zakah) to the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ, I shall fight them for withholding it. 'Umar said: By Allah, as soon as I realized that Allah had opened the heart of Abu Bakr to fighting, I realized that it was the right thing to do.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 117
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 117

274

[Sahih li ghairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุบููŠุฑูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽูˆู’ุฒูŽุงุนููŠู‘ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุงุตู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจู’ุญู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุทูู„ููˆุนู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุตู’ุฑู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽุบููŠุจูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู.

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab

that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "There is no prayer after Fajr Prayer until the sun rises, or after 'Asr prayer until the sun sets."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 118
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 118

275

[Hasan lishawahidihi)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูƒูŽู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ู†ูŽุงููุนู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูŠู‘ูŽุงุดู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุณูŽุจูŽุฅู ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุชูŽู…ููŠู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽุฒูŽู†ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุฑู’ูˆูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุบููŠุซู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู†ู’ุตูŽุงุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุถูŽู‰ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุตูŽุงุญูุจูŽ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽุงุจู‘ูŽุฉู ุฃูŽุญูŽู‚ู‘ู ุจูุตูŽุฏู’ุฑูู‡ูŽุง.

It was narrated from "Urwah bin Mugheeth al-Ansari, that 'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said:

The Prophet ๏ทบ ruled that the owner of a mount is more entitled to ride on the front part of it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 119
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 119

276

Da'of (Darussalam) [ because of the weakness of Abu Bakr bin 'Abdullah and Humrah bin Abd Kulal]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูƒูŽู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ู†ูŽุงููุนู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุงุดูุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ูƒูู„ูŽุงู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุงุฑูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุงู…ู ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ู…ูŽุณููŠุฑูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุดูŽุงุฑูŽููŽู‡ูŽุง ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽุงุนููˆู†ูŽ ููŽุงุดู ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจูู‡ู ุงุฑู’ุฌูุนู’ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽู‚ูŽุญู‘ูŽู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽูˆู’ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ู’ุชูŽู‡ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ู†ูŽุฑูŽ ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูุฎููˆุตูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ููŽุงู†ู’ุตูŽุฑูŽููŽ ุฑูŽุงุฌูุนู‹ุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉู ููŽุนูŽุฑู‘ูŽุณูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุชูู‡ู ุชูู„ู’ูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุจู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุงู†ู’ุจูŽุนูŽุซูŽ ุงู†ู’ุจูŽุนูŽุซู’ุชู ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ูููŠ ุฃูŽุซูŽุฑูู‡ู ููŽุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชูู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฑูŽุฏู‘ููˆู†ููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุงู…ู ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุดูŽุงุฑูŽูู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู„ูุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽุงุนููˆู†ูŽ ูููŠู‡ู ุฃูŽู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ุตูŽุฑูŽูููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู…ูุคูŽุฎู‘ูุฑูŒ ูููŠ ุฃูŽุฌูŽู„ููŠ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู‚ูุฏููˆู…ููŠู‡ู ู…ูุนูŽุฌู‘ูู„ููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฌูŽู„ููŠ ุฃูŽู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู‚ูŽุฏูู…ู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉูŽ ููŽููŽุฑูŽุบู’ุชู ู…ูู†ู’ ุญูŽุงุฌูŽุงุชู ู„ูŽุง ุจูุฏู‘ูŽ ู„ููŠ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุณูุฑู’ุชู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูู„ูŽ ุญูู…ู’ุตูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽูŠูŽุจู’ุนูŽุซูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ููŠูŽุงู…ูŽุฉู ุณูŽุจู’ุนููŠู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู„ู’ูู‹ุง ู„ูŽุง ุญูุณูŽุงุจูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุนูŽุฐูŽุงุจูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ู…ูŽุจู’ุนูŽุซูู‡ูู…ู’ ูููŠู…ูŽุง ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูŽูŠู’ุชููˆู†ู ูˆูŽุญูŽุงุฆูุทูู‡ูŽุง ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุฑู’ุซู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุญู’ู…ูŽุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง.

It was narrated that Humrah bin 'Abd Kulal said:

Umar bin al-Khattab travelled to Syria for the second time and when he approached it, he and those who were with him heard that the plague was widespread therein. His companions said to him: Go back and do not enter it, for if you enter it when (the plague) is in it, we do not think that you should leave it. So he set off, heading back to Madinah, and he stopped to rest at the end of that night. I was the closest of the people to him, and when he woke up, I woke up with him and followed him, and I heard him say: They turned me away from Syria after I had got close to it because the plague was there. It would be a good idea to go to Madinah and finish some work that I have to do there, then I will go and enter Syria and stay in Homs, for I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: โ€œOn the Day of Resurrection, Allah will resurrect from it seventy thousand without any reckoning or punishment, and their place of resurrection will be between the olive trees and the garden at al-Barth al Ahmar near (Homs)."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 120
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 120

277

[Sahih lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽูŠู’ูˆูŽุฉู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽู‚ููŠู„ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู‘ูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู‚ู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุบูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุฉู ุชูŽุจููˆูƒูŽ ููŽุฌูŽู„ูŽุณูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุงุณู’ุชูŽู‚ูŽู„ู‘ูŽุชู’ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู ููŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุญู’ุณูŽู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ููŽุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุบูููุฑูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฎูŽุทูŽุงูŠูŽุงู‡ู ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุฏูŽุชู’ู‡ู ุฃูู…ู‘ูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู‚ู’ุจูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู…ู’ุฏู ู„ูู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ุฑูŽุฒูŽู‚ูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุณู’ู…ูŽุนูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุชูุฌูŽุงู‡ููŠ ุฌูŽุงู„ูุณู‹ุง ุฃูŽุชูŽุนู’ุฌูŽุจู ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽุนู’ุฌูŽุจูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุฃู’ุชููŠูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ุจูุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูู…ู‘ููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุญู’ุณูŽู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽููŽุนูŽ ู†ูŽุธูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽู…ูŽุงุกู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุดู’ู‡ูŽุฏู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‡ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุญู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุง ุดูŽุฑููŠูƒูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽุดู’ู‡ูŽุฏู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู‹ุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ููุชูุญูŽุชู’ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุซูŽู…ูŽุงู†ููŠูŽุฉู ุฃูŽุจู’ูˆูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ุดูŽุงุกูŽ.

It was narrated from 'Uqbah bin โ€˜Amir

that he went out with the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ on the campaign to Tabook, and one day the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ sat talking to his companions and said: โ€œWhoever gets up when the sun has risen and does wudooโ€™. and does it well, then stands and prays two rak'ahs, his sins will be forgiven him and he will be as his mother bore him." 'Uqbah bin 'Amir said: I said: Praise be to Allah Who has blessed me by enabling me to hear this from the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ. 'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡, who was sitting in front of me, said to me: Are you surprised by this? The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said something even more amazing than this before you came. I said: What was it, may my father and mother be sacrificed for you? 'Umar said. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "Whoever does wudooโ€™ and does it well, then lifts his gaze towards heaven and says, โ€œI bear witness that there is no god but Allah alone, with no partner or associate, and I bear witness that Muhammad is His slave and Messenger," the eight gates of Paradise will be opened for him and he may enter by whichever of them he wishes."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 121
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 121

278

Da'of (Darussalam) [ because 'Abdur- Rahman al-Musli is unknown
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽูŠูŽุงู„ูุณููŠู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽูˆูŽุงู†ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽูˆู’ุฏููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุดู’ุนูŽุซู ุจู’ู†ู ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุถููู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุชูŽู†ูŽุงูˆูŽู„ูŽ ุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุชูŽู‡ู ููŽุถูŽุฑูŽุจูŽู‡ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽุดู’ุนูŽุซู ุงุญู’ููŽุธู’ ุนูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู‹ุง ุญูŽููุธู’ุชูู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ู’ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ูŽ ูููŠู…ูŽ ุถูŽุฑูŽุจูŽ ุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุชูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽู†ูŽู…ู’ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ูˆูŽุชู’ุฑู ูˆูŽู†ูŽุณููŠุชู ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู„ูุซูŽุฉูŽ.

It was narrated that al-Ash'ath bin Qais said :

I visited 'Umar and he reached out and hit his wife. He said : O: Ash'ath, learn from me three things that I learned from the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ: Do not ask a man why he hit his wife, do not sleep until you pray Witr - and I forgot the third thing
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 122
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 122

279

Sahih
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู…ูŽุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูุดู’ูƒูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูุนูŽุงุฐูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูู…ู‘ู ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽุฉู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽุชู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽุชู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ูููŠ ุฎูุทู’ุจูŽุชูู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู„ู’ุจูŽุณู’ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูู†ู’ูŠูŽุง ููŽู„ูŽุง ูŠููƒู’ุณูŽุงู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑูŽุฉู.

Abdullah bin az-Zubair said:

I heard 'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ say in his khutbah that he heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: " Whoever wears silk in this world will not be clothed with it in the Hereafter."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 123
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 123

280

Hasan lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽูŠูŽุณููŠุฑูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุงูƒูุจู ูููŠ ุฌูŽู†ูŽุจูŽุงุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุญูŽุงุถูุฑูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ูƒูŽุซููŠุฑูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฃูŽุญู’ู…ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูŽู†ู’ุจูŽู„ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽุฌูุฒู’ ุจูู‡ู ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŒ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุดู’ูŠูŽุจู ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู‹ุง.

It was narrated that Jabir said:

Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ told me: he heard the Prophet ๏ทบ "A rider will travel through the streets of Madinah, then he will say: There used to be many believers here."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 124
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 124

281

Hasan lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุฑููˆู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ูˆูŽู‡ู’ุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุงุฑูุซู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุงุฆูุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุงุณูู…ูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุงุณูู…ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุจูŽุฆููŠู‘ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุงุตู‘ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฌู’ู†ูŽุงุฏู ุจูุงู„ู’ู‚ูุณู’ุทูŽู†ู’ุทููŠู†ููŠู‘ูŽุฉู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽู‡ู ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูุคู’ู…ูู†ู ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑู ููŽู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุนูุฏูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุงุฆูุฏูŽุฉู ูŠูุฏูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ุจูุงู„ู’ุฎูŽู…ู’ุฑู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูุคู’ู…ูู†ู ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑู ููŽู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู’ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุจูุฅูุฒูŽุงุฑู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ุชูุคู’ู…ูู†ู ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑู ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู’ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงู…ูŽ.

Al-Qasim bin Abil-Qasim as-Saba'i narrated from a preacher who was addressing the troops in al-Qustanteeniyyah, that he heard him narrate that

Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said: O people, I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: "Whoever believes in Allah and the Last Day, let him not sit at a table where alcohol is being passed around; whoever believes in Allah and the Last Day, let him not enter a bathhouse unless he is wearing a waist wrapper; and whoever (among women) believes in Allah and the Last Day, let her not enter bathhouses (at all).โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 125
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 125

282

Sahih hadeeth
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูุฒูŽุงุนููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู„ูŽูŠู’ุซูŒ ูˆูŽูŠููˆู†ูุณู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู„ูŽูŠู’ุซูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูุณูŽุงู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู‡ูŽุงุฏู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ููŠุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุณูุฑูŽุงู‚ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุธูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณูŽ ุบูŽุงุฒู ุฃูŽุธูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ููŠูŽุงู…ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽู‡ู‘ูŽุฒูŽ ุบูŽุงุฒููŠู‹ุง ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุณู’ุชูŽู‚ูู„ู‘ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ู…ูุซู’ู„ู ุฃูŽุฌู’ุฑูู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽู…ููˆุชูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠููˆู†ูุณู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ูŠูŽุฑู’ุฌูุนูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุจูŽู†ูŽู‰ ู„ูู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู‹ุง ูŠูุฐู’ูƒูŽุฑู ูููŠู‡ู ุงุณู’ู…ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ ุจูŽู†ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽู‡ู ุจูู‡ู ุจูŽูŠู’ุชู‹ุง ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉู.

It was narrated from 'Uthman bin โ€˜Abdullah, i.e. Ibn Suraqah, that

Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: โ€œWhoever shades the head of a fighter (mujahid), Allah will shade him on the Day of Resurrection; whoever equips a fighter until he has all that he needs, will have a reward equal to his until he dies (Yoonus said: or returns); whoever builds a mosque in which the Name of Allah may He be exalted, is remembered,Allah will build for him a house in Paradise." ,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 126
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 126

283

Sahih (Darussalam) [Muslim (1056)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽูˆูŽุงู†ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูŽู‚ููŠู‚ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู‚ูŽุณูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูุณู’ู…ูŽุฉู‹ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุบูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุฃูŽุญูŽู‚ู‘ู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ุตู‘ููู‘ูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุชูุฎูŽูŠู‘ูุฑููˆู†ููŠ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ููˆู†ููŠ ุจูุงู„ู’ููุญู’ุดู ูˆูŽุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูุจูŽุฎู‘ูู„ููˆู†ููŠ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุณู’ุชู ุจูุจูŽุงุฎูู„ู.

Salman bin Rabee'ah said.

I heard โ€˜Umar say: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ shared out (some booty) and I said: O Messenger of Allah, others are more deserving of this than them: ahlus-suffah. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "You are giving me the choice of having you ask importunately or regard me as a miser, and I am not a miser."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 127
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 127

284

Sahih lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฎูŽุงู„ูุฏูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฒููŠูŽุงุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุฏู‘ูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏูŽุซู ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุณูŽุญูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู†ู.

It was narrated that สผUmar bin al-Khattab said:

l saw the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ do wudooโ€™after minor impurity and he wiped over the khuffain.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 128
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 128

285

(Da'of (Darussalam) [ because of the weakness of 'Ali bin Zaid bin Jud'an]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฑูŽุงููุนู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูุณู’ุชูŽู†ูุฏู‹ุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ูˆูŽุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุนู’ู„ูŽู…ููˆุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽู‚ูู„ู’ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ุดูŽูŠู’ุฆู‹ุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ููู’ ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏููŠ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฑูŽูƒูŽ ูˆูŽููŽุงุชููŠ ู…ูู†ู’ ุณูŽุจู’ูŠู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฑูŽุจู ููŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุญูุฑู‘ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูŽุงู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุฃูŽุดูŽุฑู’ุชูŽ ุจูุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููŠู†ูŽ ู„ูŽุฃู’ุชูŽู…ูŽู†ูŽูƒูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ููŽุนูŽู„ูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฃู’ุชูŽู…ูŽู†ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจููŠ ุญูุฑู’ุตู‹ุง ุณูŽูŠู‘ูุฆู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฌูŽุงุนูู„ูŒ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽููŽุฑู ุงู„ุณู‘ูุชู‘ูŽุฉู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุงุชูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุฑูŽุงุถู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฑูŽูƒูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฌูŽุนูŽู„ู’ุชู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆูŽุซูู‚ู’ุชู ุจูู‡ู ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ูŒ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุญูุฐูŽูŠู’ููŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุญู.

It was narrated from Abu Rafiโ€™ that

Umar bin al-Khattab was leaning on Ibn โ€˜Abbas, and Ibn 'Umar and Sa'eed bin Zaid were with him. He said: You should note that I have not said anything about kalalah and I have not appointed anyone to succeed me. Whoever of Arab captives are present when I die, are to be freed although they are among the wealth of Allah, may He be glorified and exalted. Sa'eed bin Zaid said: Why don't you suggest a man among the Muslims so that the people may follow your advice? Abu Bakr did that and the people followed his advice and trusted him. โ€˜Umar said: I have noticed too much greed and ambition, and I will leave this matter to be decided by these six people with whom the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ was pleased when he died. Then โ€˜Umar said: If one of the two men were still alive, I would have referred to this matter to him and I would have trusted him: Salim the freed slave of Abu Hudhaifah and Abu 'Ubaidah bin al-Jarrah.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 129
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 129

286

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (581) and Muslim (826)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงู…ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุงู„ููŠูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุดูŽู‡ูุฏูŽ ุนูู†ู’ุฏููŠ ุฑูุฌูŽุงู„ูŒ ู…ูŽุฑู’ุถููŠู‘ููˆู†ูŽ ูููŠู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽุฑู’ุถูŽุงู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูู†ู’ุฏููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจู’ุญู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽุทู’ู„ูุนูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุตู’ุฑู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽุบู’ุฑูุจูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู.

It was narrated that Ibn 'Abbas said:

Some righteous men, including โ€˜Umar - and the most righteous of them in my view was 'Umar - confirmed when I was present that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "There is no prayer after Fajr until the sun rises and there is no prayer after 'Asr until the sun sets."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 130
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 130

287

Qawi (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูู‡ูŽูŠู’ุจูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฎูุซูŽูŠู’ู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽูƒูŽุจู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ุฑู‘ููƒู’ู†ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู„ูŽุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑูŒ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽุฑูŽ ุญูŽุจููŠุจููŠ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ูŽูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุงุณู’ุชูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุงุณู’ุชูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ุชููƒูŽ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ู’ุชููƒูŽ ูˆูŽ [[[{ ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู„ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ูููŠ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูุณู’ูˆูŽุฉูŒ ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŽุฉูŒ }]]].

It was narrated from Ibn 'Abbas

that 'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ held onto the corner of the Ka'bah and said: I know that you are only a stone; if I had not seen my Beloved kiss you or touch you, I would not have touched you or kissed you. โ€œIndeed in the Messenger of Allah (Muhammad ๏ทบ) you have a good example to followโ€ (al-Ahzab 33:21].
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 131
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 131

288

Hasan lighairihi; this isnad is daeef because it is interrupted
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽูู‘ูŽุงู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฏูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽู‰ ูููŠ ูŠูŽุฏู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ุฎูŽุงุชูŽู…ู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุฐูŽู‡ูŽุจู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู„ู’ู‚ู ุฐูŽุง ููŽุฃูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽุงู‡ู ููŽุชูŽุฎูŽุชู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุจูุฎูŽุงุชูŽู…ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุญูŽุฏููŠุฏู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฐูŽุง ุดูŽุฑู‘ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุชูŽุฎูŽุชู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุจูุฎูŽุงุชูŽู…ู ู…ูู†ู’ ููุถู‘ูŽุฉู ููŽุณูŽูƒูŽุชูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู.

Ammar bin Abi โ€˜Ammar told us that

'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ saw a ring of gold on a man's hand and he said: โ€œThrow it away,โ€ so he threw it away and acquired a ring of iron. He said: "This is even worse." Then he acquired a ring of silver, and he did not say anything,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 132
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 132

289

[Hasan (Darussalam) []
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุนูŽุงูˆููŠูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฒูŽุงุฆูุฏูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุงุตูู…ูŒ ูˆูŽุญูุณูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูŽุงุฆูุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูุฑู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูุจูุถูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู†ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ู…ูู†ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŒ ูˆูŽู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŒ ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽุงู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ุดูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู†ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ุฃูŽู„ูŽุณู’ุชูู…ู’ ุชูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ููˆู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุคูู…ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ููŽุฃูŽูŠู‘ููƒูู…ู’ ุชูŽุทููŠุจู ู†ูŽูู’ุณูู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุชูŽู‚ูŽุฏู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู†ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ู†ูŽุนููˆุฐู ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุชูŽู‚ูŽุฏู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู.

It was narrated from Zirr that 'Abdullah said:

When the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ died, the Ansar said: A leader from among us and a leader from among you. โ€˜Umar went to them and said: O Ansar, do you not know that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ ordered Abu Bakr to lead the people in prayer? Which of you would like himself to be given precedence over Abu Bakr? The Ansar said: We seek refuge with Allah from being given precedence over Abu Bakr.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 133
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 133

290

Sahih hadeeth
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ููˆุณูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฑูŽุฃูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ู„ูู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ููŽุชูŽุฑูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ุถูุนูŽ ุธูููุฑู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุธูŽู‡ู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุฏูŽู…ูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุจู’ุตูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุฑู’ุฌูุนู’ ููŽุฃูŽุญู’ุณูู†ู’ ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุนูŽ ููŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰.

It was narrated from Jabir that

'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ told him that he saw a man doing wudooโ€™ for prayer, and he missed an area the size of a fingernail on the top of his foot. The Prophet ๏ทบ saw him and said: "Go back and do your wudooโ€™ properly.โ€ So he went back and did wudooโ€™ then he prayed.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 134
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 134

291

Da'of (Darussalam) [ because Abu Yahya al-Makki and Farrookh the freed slave of 'Uthman are unknown.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุจูŽู†ููŠ ู‡ูŽุงุดูู…ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู‡ูŽูŠู’ุซูŽู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุงููุนู ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽุงุทูŽุฑููŠู‘ู ุจูŽุตู’ุฑููŠู‘ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ู…ูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ููŽุฑู‘ููˆุฎูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽุฆูุฐู ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู ููŽุฑูŽุฃูŽู‰ ุทูŽุนูŽุงู…ู‹ุง ู…ูŽู†ู’ุซููˆุฑู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽุนูŽุงู…ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ุทูŽุนูŽุงู…ูŒ ุฌูู„ูุจูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุจูŽุงุฑูŽูƒูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูููŠู‡ู ูˆูŽูููŠู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽู„ูŽุจูŽู‡ู ู‚ููŠู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุงุญู’ุชููƒูุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุงุญู’ุชูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ููŽุฑู‘ููˆุฎู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ูˆูŽููู„ูŽุงู†ูŒ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฑู’ุณูŽู„ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽุฏูŽุนูŽุงู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุญูŽู…ูŽู„ูŽูƒูู…ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงุญู’ุชููƒูŽุงุฑู ุทูŽุนูŽุงู…ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููŠู†ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ู†ูŽุดู’ุชูŽุฑููŠ ุจูุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู†ูŽุจููŠุนู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุงุญู’ุชูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููŠู†ูŽ ุทูŽุนูŽุงู…ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุถูŽุฑูŽุจูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจูุงู„ู’ุฅููู’ู„ูŽุงุณู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุจูุฌูุฐูŽุงู…ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฑู‘ููˆุฎู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ุฃูุนูŽุงู‡ูุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูุนูŽุงู‡ูุฏููƒูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽุนููˆุฏูŽ ูููŠ ุทูŽุนูŽุงู…ู ุฃูŽุจูŽุฏู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ู†ูŽุดู’ุชูŽุฑููŠ ุจูุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู†ูŽุจููŠุนู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ููŽู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู…ูŽุฌู’ุฐููˆู…ู‹ุง.

It was narrated from Farrookh the freed slave of 'Uthman that

'Umar - who at that time was the caliph - went out to the mosque and saw some food that had been put out. He said: What is this food? They said: It is food that has been brought to us. He said: May Allah bless it and the one who brought it. It was said:O Ameer al-Mu'mineen, it has been hoarded. He said: Who hoarded it? They said: Farrookh the freed slave of 'Uthman and So and so the freed slave of โ€˜Umar. He sent for them and summoned them and said: What made you hoard the food of the Muslims? They said: O Ameer al-Mu'mineen, we buy it with our own wealth and sell it. 'Umar said: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: โ€œWhoever hoards food from the Muslims, Allah will smite him with bankruptcy or leprosy." At that Farrookh said: O Ameer al-Mu'mineen, I promise to Allah and to you that I will not hoard food again. As for the freed slave of 'Umar, he said: We buy it with our own wealth and sell it, Abu Yahya said: I saw the freed slave of โ€˜Umar with leprosy.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 135
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 135

292

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (7164) and Musiim (1045]]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽุงู†ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูุนู’ุทููŠู†ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุทูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽุฃูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฃูŽุนู’ุทูู‡ู ุฃูŽูู’ู‚ูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู…ูู†ู‘ููŠ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุนู’ุทูŽุงู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ู…ูŽุงู„ู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุนู’ุทูู‡ู ุฃูŽูู’ู‚ูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู…ูู†ู‘ููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฎูุฐู’ู‡ู ููŽุชูŽู…ูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูŽุตูŽุฏู‘ูŽู‚ู’ ุจูู‡ู ููŽู…ูŽุง ุฌูŽุงุกูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู„ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู…ูุดู’ุฑููู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุณูŽุงุฆูู„ู ููŽุฎูุฐู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ู„ูŽุง ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุชู’ุจูุนู’ู‡ู ู†ูŽูู’ุณูŽูƒูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุฑููˆู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ูˆูŽู‡ู’ุจู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ูŠููˆู†ูุณู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุดูู‡ูŽุงุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูุนู’ุทููŠู†ููŠ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุทูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ู…ูŽุนู’ู†ูŽุงู‡ู.

Abdullah bin 'Umar said:

I heard 'Umar say: The Prophet ๏ทบ used to give me things and I would say: Give it to one who has more need of it than me. Then one time he gave me some wealth and I said: Give it to one who has more need of it than me. The Prophet ๏ทบ said: "Take it and keep it or give it in charity. Whatever of this wealth comes to you when you are not hoping for it or asking for it, take it, otherwise do not hanker after it.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 136
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 136

293

Sahih (Darussalam) [according to the conditions of al-Bukhari and Muslim)

It was narrated from Salim, that his father said:

I heard โ€˜Umar say: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ used to give me things... and he mentioned a similar hadeeth.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 137
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 137

294

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽุงุฌูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู„ูŽูŠู’ุซูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุจููƒูŽูŠู’ุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู„ููƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู†ู’ุตูŽุงุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูŽุดูŽุดู’ุชู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุตูŽุงุฆูู…ูŒ ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุตูŽู†ูŽุนู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู‹ุง ุนูŽุธููŠู…ู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุตูŽุงุฆูู…ูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชูŽ ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุชูŽู…ูŽุถู’ู…ูŽุถู’ุชูŽ ุจูู…ูŽุงุกู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ุตูŽุงุฆูู…ูŒ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽุง ุจูŽุฃู’ุณูŽ ุจูุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽูููŠู…ูŽ.

it was narrated that

Umar bin al-Khattab said: I was in good spirits one day and kissed (my wife) when I was fasting. I came to the Prophet ๏ทบ and said: I have done something serious. I kissed (my wife) when I was fasting. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: โ€œWhat do you think if you rinse your mouth with water when you are fasting?" I said: There is nothing wrong with it. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: โ€œThen why (are you worried)?"
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 138
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 138

295

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2643)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠููˆู†ูุณู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ููุฑูŽุงุชู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุจูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉูŽ ููŽูˆูŽุงููŽูŠู’ุชูู‡ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุนูŽ ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ู…ูŽุฑูŽุถูŒ ููŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูŠูŽู…ููˆุชููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ุชู‹ุง ุฐูŽุฑููŠุนู‹ุง ููŽุฌูŽู„ูŽุณู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุชู’ ุจูู‡ู ุฌูŽู†ูŽุงุฒูŽุฉูŒ ููŽุฃูุซู’ู†ููŠูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุตูŽุงุญูุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฌูŽุจูŽุชู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุฑู‘ูŽ ุจูุฃูุฎู’ุฑูŽู‰ ููŽุฃูุซู’ู†ููŠูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุตูŽุงุญูุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฌูŽุจูŽุชู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุฑู‘ูŽ ุจูุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู„ูุซูŽุฉู ููŽุฃูุซู’ู†ููŠูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ุดูŽุฑู‘ู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฌูŽุจูŽุชู’ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฌูŽุจูŽุชู’ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู…ูŽุง ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ู ุดูŽู‡ูุฏูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุฑู’ุจูŽุนูŽุฉูŒ ุจูุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฎูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽุฉูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽุฉูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงุซู’ู†ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุงุซู’ู†ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ู†ูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏู.

It was narrated that Abul Aswad said:

I came to Madinah and found that sickness was occurring in it and death was widespread. I sat with 'Umar bin al-Khattab and a funeral passed by him. People spoke well of the deceased and โ€˜Umar said: It is guaranteed. Then another funeral passed by and people spoke well of the deceased and โ€˜Umar said: It is guaranteed. Then a third funeral passed by and people spoke badly of the deceased and โ€˜Umar said: It is guaranteed. Abul-Aswad said: What is guaranteed, O Ameer al-Mu'mineen? He said: I am saying what the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "Any Muslim in whose favour four people testify, Allah will admit him to Paradise." We said: And three? He said: "And three." We said: And two? He said: "And two " Then we did not ask him about one.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 139
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 139

296

(A qawi hadeeth)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุจููƒูŽูŠู’ุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุบูŽุฒูŽูˆู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุฑูŽู…ูŽุถูŽุงู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ููŽุชู’ุญูŽ ูููŠ ุฑูŽู…ูŽุถูŽุงู†ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽูู’ุทูŽุฑู’ู†ูŽุง ูููŠู‡ูู…ูŽุง.

It was narrated that โ€˜Umar said:

We went on a campaign with the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ during Ramadan and the conquest took place in Ramadan, and we broke the fast in both cases.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 140
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 140

297

Da'if (Darussalam) because Al Ghadban bin Hanzalah and his father are unknown.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุจูŽู†ููŠ ู‡ูŽุงุดูู…ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูุซูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูˆู’ูู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽู†ูŽุฒููŠู‘ู ุจูŽุตู’ุฑููŠู‘ูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุถู’ุจูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูŽู†ู’ุธูŽู„ูŽุฉูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุงู‡ู ุญูŽู†ู’ุธูŽู„ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ู†ูุนูŽูŠู’ู…ู ูˆูŽููŽุฏูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฅูุฐูŽุง ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽ ุจูู‡ู ุฅูู†ู’ุณูŽุงู†ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽูู’ุฏู ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ู…ูู…ู‘ูŽู†ู’ ู‡ููˆูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽ ุจูู‡ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ู…ูู…ู‘ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุนูŽู†ูŽุฒูŽุฉูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุญูŽูŠู‘ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽุงู‡ูู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุจู’ุบููŠู‘ูŒ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ู…ูŽู†ู’ุตููˆุฑููˆู†ูŽ.

Al-Ghadban bin Hanzalah said that

His Father Hanzalah bin Nu'aim came in a delegation to 'Umar, and when a member of the delegation passed by him, Umar would ask him where he was from. Then my father passed by him and asked him: Where are you from? He said from 'Anazah. He said: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ: "A tribe from there will be wronged but they will prevail"
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 141
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 141

298

A Qawi Hadeeth
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ููˆุณูŽู‰ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุญูŽุจููŠุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ุตู‘ููŠูŽุงู…ู ูููŠ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽููŽุฑู ููŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุบูŽุฒูŽูˆู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุบูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ูููŠ ุดูŽู‡ู’ุฑู ุฑูŽู…ูŽุถูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุจูŽุฏู’ุฑู ูˆูŽูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ููŽุชู’ุญู ููŽุฃูŽูู’ุทูŽุฑู’ู†ูŽุง ูููŠู‡ูู…ูŽุง.

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ that he said:

We went out on two campaigns with the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ during the month of Ramadan, the day of Badr and the conquest (of Makkah), and we broke the fast in both cases.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 142
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 142

299

Qawi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฏูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุบูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏููŠู‘ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽูŠู’ู…ููˆู†ูŒ ุงู„ู’ูƒูุฑู’ุฏููŠู‘ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู’ุฏููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ูˆูŽููŽ ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎูŽุงูู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ูƒูู„ู‘ู ู…ูู†ูŽุงููู‚ู ุนูŽู„ููŠู…ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูุณูŽุงู†ู.

It was narrated from Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said:

"The thing I fear most for my Ummah is every hypocrite who speaks with knowledge"
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 143
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 143

300

Da'if (Darussalam) [because of the weakness of Salih bin Muhammad bin Za'idah]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฒููŠุฒู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุตูŽุงู„ูุญู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒูŽุงุฆูุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ู…ูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู„ููƒู ูููŠ ุฃูŽุฑู’ุถู ุงู„ุฑู‘ููˆู…ู ููŽูˆูุฌูุฏูŽ ูููŠ ู…ูŽุชูŽุงุนู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ุบูู„ููˆู„ูŒ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ุชูู…ู’ ูููŠ ู…ูŽุชูŽุงุนูู‡ู ุบูู„ููˆู„ู‹ุง ููŽุฃูŽุญู’ุฑูู‚ููˆู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุญู’ุณูŽุจูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุงุถู’ุฑูุจููˆู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฎู’ุฑูŽุฌูŽ ู…ูŽุชูŽุงุนูŽู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ุณู‘ููˆู‚ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏูŽ ูููŠู‡ู ู…ูุตู’ุญูŽูู‹ุง ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุจูุนู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูŽุตูŽุฏู‘ูŽู‚ู’ ุจูุซูŽู…ูŽู†ูู‡ู.

It was narrated from Salim bin 'Abdullah

that he was with Maslamah bin 'Abdul-ยญMalik in the land of the Byzantines, and they found some stolen booty with a man's goods. He asked Salim bin โ€˜Abdullah and he said: "Abdullah bin 'Umar toid me from โ€˜Umar that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said:

โ€œIf you find stolen booty with a man, then burn it ยญ and I think he said: and beat him.โ€ So he took his property out to the market and found a Mushaf among his goods. He asked Salim, who said: Sell it, and gave its price in charity,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 144
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 144

301

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ูˆูŽุญูุณูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุณู’ุฑูŽุงุฆููŠู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽูŠู’ู…ููˆู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุชูŽุนูŽูˆู‘ูŽุฐู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฎูŽู…ู’ุณู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุจูุฎู’ู„ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฌูุจู’ู†ู ูˆูŽููุชู’ู†ูŽุฉู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽุฏู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุนูŽุฐูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุจู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุณููˆุกู ุงู„ู’ุนูู…ูุฑู.

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar

that the Prophet ๏ทบ used to seek refuge with Allah from five things: from miserliness, cowardice, the tribulations of the heart (grudges, envy, bad attitude and bad beliefs), the torment of the grave and old age.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 145
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 145

302

Da'if (Darussalam) [because Abu Yazeed al-Khawlani is unknown]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูŽุทูŽุงุกูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฏููŠู†ูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ููŽุถูŽุงู„ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูู‡ูŽุฏูŽุงุกู ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽุฉูŒ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ ุฌูŽูŠู‘ูุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฅููŠู…ูŽุงู†ู ู„ูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ูŽ ููŽุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ููŽุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ูŠูŽุฑู’ููŽุนู ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฃูŽุนู’ู†ูŽุงู‚ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ููŠูŽุงู…ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฑูŽููŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุนูŽุชู’ ู‚ูŽู„ูŽู†ู’ุณููˆูŽุชูู‡ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูŽู„ูŽู†ู’ุณููˆูŽุฉู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ ุฌูŽูŠู‘ูุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฅููŠู…ูŽุงู†ู ู„ูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ูŽ ููŽูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ูŠูุถู’ุฑูŽุจู ุฌูู„ู’ุฏูู‡ู ุจูุดูŽูˆู’ูƒู ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽู„ู’ุญู ุฃูŽุชูŽุงู‡ู ุณูŽู‡ู’ู…ูŒ ุบูŽุฑู’ุจูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุชูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ู‡ููˆูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุฉู ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู†ููŠูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ ุฌูŽูŠู‘ูุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฅููŠู…ูŽุงู†ู ุฎูŽู„ูŽุทูŽ ุนูŽู…ูŽู„ู‹ุง ุตูŽุงู„ูุญู‹ุง ูˆูŽุขุฎูŽุฑูŽ ุณูŽูŠู‘ูุฆู‹ุง ู„ูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ูŽ ููŽุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ููŽุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุฉู ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู„ูุซูŽุฉู.

Faddalah bin 'Ubaid said:

I heard 'Umar bin al-Khattab say that he heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: "The martyrs are three; a man who believes and has good faith, who meets the enemy and shows sincerity to Allah until he is killed ยญ he is the one to whom people will raise their heads on the Day of Resurrection" ยญ and the ยญยญMessenger of Allah ๏ทบ raised his head until his hat or Umar's hat fell off - ; "and a man who is a believer and has good faith, who meets the enemy and it is as if his skin was beaten with the thorns of an acacia tree, then a stray arrow comes and kills him - he will be in the second rank; and a man who is a believer and has good faith, but he mixes good and bad deeds, and he meets the enemy and shows sincerity to Allah until he is killed - he will be in the third rank."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 146
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 146

303

A Hasan hadeeth
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุฏู‘ูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูู‚ูŽุงุฏู ูˆูŽุงู„ูุฏูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุฏู.

It was narrated from Umar that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said:

"No father is to be killed in retaliatory punishment for his son" And the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "The one who inherits loyalty (wala - loyalty of a free slave) also inherits his wealth
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 147
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 147

304

A Hasan hadeeth
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽุง ูŠูู‚ูŽุงุฏู ู„ููˆูŽู„ูŽุฏู ู…ูู†ู’ ูˆูŽุงู„ูุฏูู‡ู.

Umar bin Al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say

"No father is to be killed in retaliatory punishment for killing his son"
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 148
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 148

305

Sahih lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ุถู‘ูŽุญู‘ูŽุงูƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุดูุฑูŽุญู’ุจููŠู„ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹.

It was narrated from Umar bin al khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ that he said

I saw the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ do wudoo' , washing each part once.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 149
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 149

306

Da'if
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุทูŽุงุกู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏููŠู†ูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ููŽุถูŽุงู„ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูู‡ูŽุฏูŽุงุกู ุฃูŽุฑู’ุจูŽุนูŽุฉูŒ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ ุฌูŽูŠู‘ูุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฅููŠู…ูŽุงู†ู ู„ูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ูŽ ููŽุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ููŽู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ููŽุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ูŠูŽู†ู’ุธูุฑู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู‡ูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ูˆูŽุฑูŽููŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุณูŽู‚ูŽุทูŽุชู’ ู‚ูŽู„ูŽู†ู’ุณููˆูŽุฉู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูŽู„ูŽู†ู’ุณููˆูŽุฉู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู†ููŠ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ ู„ูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ูŽ ููŽูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ูŠูุถู’ุฑูŽุจู ุธูŽู‡ู’ุฑูู‡ู ุจูุดูŽูˆู’ูƒู ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽู„ู’ุญู ุฌูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู‡ู’ู…ูŒ ุบูŽุฑู’ุจูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุชูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุฉู ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู†ููŠูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู„ูุซู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ ุฎูŽู„ูŽุทูŽ ุนูŽู…ูŽู„ู‹ุง ุตูŽุงู„ูุญู‹ุง ูˆูŽุขุฎูŽุฑูŽ ุณูŽูŠู‘ูุฆู‹ุง ู„ูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ูŽ ููŽุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุฉู ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู„ูุซูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุงุจูุนู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ ุฃูŽุณู’ุฑูŽููŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู†ูŽูู’ุณูู‡ู ุฅูุณู’ุฑูŽุงูู‹ุง ูƒูŽุซููŠุฑู‹ุง ู„ูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฏููˆู‘ูŽ ููŽุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ููŽุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุฉู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุงุจูุนูŽุฉู.

Fadalah bin 'Ubaid said:

I heard 'Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ say: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: " The martyrs are four: a man who believes and has good faith, who meets the enemy and shows sincerity to Allah until he is killed - he is the one at whom people will look like this"- and he raised his head until the hat of the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ or 'Umar's hat fell of. " The second is a man who is a believer and has good faith, who meets the enemy and it is as if his back was beaten with the thorns of an acacia tree, then a stray arrow comes and kills him- he will be in a the second rank. The third is a man who is a believer, but he mixes good and bad deeds, and he meets the enemy and shows sincerity to Allah until he is killed- he will be in the third rank. The fourth is a believing man who transgresses against himself by committing a great deal of evil deeds and sins, who meets the enemy and shows sincerity to Allah until he is killed- he will be in the fourth rank."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 150
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 150

307

Sahih lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุบูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฑูุดู’ุฏููŠู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุงููู‚ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ุนูŽุงู…ูŽ ุชูŽุจููˆูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏูŽุฉู‹ ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏูŽุฉู‹.

It was narrated from 'Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ from the Prophet ๏ทบ

that he did wudoo' in the year of tabook, washing each part once.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 151
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 151

308

Da'if because of the weakness of Ibn Lahee'ah
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽูŠูŽุฎู’ุฑูุฌู ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ู…ูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ุจูุฑู ุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ุฑูููู‡ูŽุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูŽู„ููŠู„ูŒ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุชูŽู…ู’ุชูŽู„ูุฆู ูˆูŽุชูุจู’ู†ูŽู‰ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽุฎู’ุฑูุฌููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ููŽู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนููˆุฏููˆู†ูŽ ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจูŽุฏู‹ุง.

It was narrated from Jabir

that Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ told him that he heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: " The people of Makkah will leave and no one will come to it-or no one will come to it except a few-then it will be filled and built up, then they will leave it and never return to it."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 152
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 152

309

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ู„ูุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ุธู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑู ููŽุชูŽุฑูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ุถูุนูŽ ุธูููุฑู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุธูŽู‡ู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุฏูŽู…ูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุจู’ุตูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุฑู’ุฌูุนู’ ููŽุฃูŽุญู’ุณูู†ู’ ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุนูŽ ููŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰.

It was narrated from Jabir

that 'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ told him that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ saw a man doing wudoo' to pray Zuhr, and he missed a spot the size of a toenail. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ saw him and said: "Go back and do your wudoo' properly" So he went back and did wudoo', then he prayed.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 153
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 153

310

Sahih (Darussalam) [Al-Bukhari(2462) and Muslim (1691)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฒูŽุนูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุณู’ุนููˆุฏู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูุทู’ุฑููˆู†ููŠ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุทู’ุฑูŽุชู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุตูŽุงุฑูŽู‰ ุนููŠุณูŽู‰ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงู… ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู.

It was narrated from Umar that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said:

"Do not praise me as the Christians praised 'Eesa bin Maryam ุนู„ูŠู‡ ุงู„ุณู„ุงู…. I am no more than the slave of Allah and His Messenger."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 154
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 154

311

Sahih (Darussalam) [Al Bukhari(4722) and Muslim (446)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูุดู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุขูŠูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูุชูŽูˆูŽุงุฑู ุจูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฉูŽ [[[{ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุฌู’ู‡ูŽุฑู’ ุจูุตูŽู„ูŽุงุชููƒูŽ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุฎูŽุงููุชู’ ุจูู‡ูŽุง }]]] ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุจูุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจูู‡ู ุฑูŽููŽุนูŽ ุตูŽูˆู’ุชูŽู‡ู ุจูุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููˆู†ูŽ ุณูŽุจู‘ููˆุง ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ุจูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ู„ูู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ [[[{ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุฌู’ู‡ูŽุฑู’ ุจูุตูŽู„ูŽุงุชููƒูŽ }]]] ุฃูŽูŠู’ ุจูู‚ูุฑูŽุงุกูŽุชููƒูŽ ููŽูŠูŽุณู’ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููˆู†ูŽ ููŽูŠูŽุณูุจู‘ููˆุง ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ูŽ [[[{ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุฎูŽุงููุชู’ ุจูู‡ูŽุง }]]] ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจููƒูŽ ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุณู’ู…ูุนูู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุฃู’ุฎูุฐููˆู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ูƒูŽ [[[{ ูˆูŽุงุจู’ุชูŽุบู ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุณูŽุจููŠู„ู‹ุง }]]].

It was narrated that Ibn 'Abbas said:

This verse was revealed when the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ was preaching secretly in Makkah: " And offer your Salah neither aloud nor in a low voice" [Al Isra' 17:110]. He said: When he led the companions in prayer, he raised his voice reciting the Qur'an, and when the mushrikeen heard that, they reviled the Qur'an, the one who revealed it and the one to whom it was sent. Then Allah said to his Prophet: " And offer your Salah (prayer) neither aloud" i.e, when reciting, lest the mushrikeen hear and revile the Qur'an,"nor in a low voice" that your companions cannot hear the Qur'an, so that they can learn it from you; "but follow a way between"
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 155
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 155

312

Da'if because of the weakness of Ali bin Zaid bin Jud'an
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠููˆุณูููŽ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูู‡ู’ุฑูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูุดูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽู†ูŽุง ููŽุญูŽู…ูุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุซู’ู†ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌู’ู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูุฎู’ุฏูŽุนูู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุญูุฏููˆุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู„ูŽุง ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฌูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽู…ู’ู†ูŽุง ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงุฆูู„ููˆู†ูŽ ุฒูŽุงุฏูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ูููŠ ูƒูุชูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ู„ูŽูŠู’ุณูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ู„ูŽูƒูŽุชูŽุจู’ุชูู‡ู ูููŠ ู†ูŽุงุญููŠูŽุฉู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุตู’ุญูŽูู ุดูŽู‡ูุฏูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูุดูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ูˆูŽุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูˆู’ูู ูˆูŽููู„ูŽุงู†ูŒ ูˆูŽููู„ูŽุงู†ูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฌูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽู…ู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูู‡ู ุฃูŽู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏููƒูู…ู’ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ูŒ ูŠููƒูŽุฐู‘ูุจููˆู†ูŽ ุจูุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌู’ู…ู ูˆูŽุจูุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽุฌู‘ูŽุงู„ู ูˆูŽุจูุงู„ุดู‘ูŽููŽุงุนูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุจูุนูŽุฐูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุจู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุจูู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู ูŠูุฎู’ุฑูŽุฌููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽู…ูŽุง ุงู…ู’ุชูŽุญูŽุดููˆุง.

It was narrated from Ibn 'Abbas

That 'Umar bin al-Khattab delivered a speech- on one ocassion, Hushaim said: addressed us. - He praised and glorified Allah, then he mentioned stoning and said: Do not be diverted away from it, for it is one of the hadd punishments of Allah. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ stoned [adulterers], and we stoned [them] after he was gone. Were it not that some may say that 'Umar added something to the Book of Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, that is not part of it, I would have written it in some place in the Mushaf. 'Umar bin al-Khattab testified - and on one occasion Hushaim said: and 'Abdur-Rahman bin 'Awf and so and so and so and so[also testified] that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ stoned [adulterers] and we stoned [them] after he was gone. But there will come people after you who do not believe in stoning, or in the Dajjal, or intercession, or the torment of the grave, or that people will be brought out of Hell after they have been burned in it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 156
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 156

313

Sahih (Darussalam) ,Al-Bukhari (402)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฏูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ูŽุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุงููŽู‚ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ูููŠ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุงุชู‘ูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ู ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ู…ูุตูŽู„ู‘ู‹ู‰ ููŽู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ [[[{ ูˆูŽุงุชู‘ูŽุฎูุฐููˆุง ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ู ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ู…ูุตูŽู„ู‘ู‹ู‰ }]]] ูˆูŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ู†ูุณูŽุงุกูŽูƒูŽ ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ููŽุงุฌูุฑู ููŽู„ูŽูˆู’ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑู’ุชูŽู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุญู’ุชูŽุฌูุจู’ู†ูŽ ููŽู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ุขูŠูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ุญูุฌูŽุงุจู ูˆูŽุงุฌู’ุชูŽู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูุณูŽุงุคูู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽุฉู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ [[[{ ุนูŽุณูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุจู‘ูู‡ู ุฅูู†ู’ ุทูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‚ูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุจู’ุฏูู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงุฌู‹ุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ }]]] ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ูƒูŽุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ.

It was narrated that Anas said:

Umar said: I agreed with my Lord on three matters, I said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , why don't we take the Maqam of Ibraheem as a place of prayer? Then the verse was revealed: " And take you(people) the Maqam (place) of Ibraheem (Abraham) [ or the stone on which Ibraheem (Abraham) stood while he was building the Kabah]as a place of prayer" [al Baqarah 2:125]. And I said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , both righteous and evil doers enter your wives, so why don't you tell them to observe the hijab? Then the verse of hijab was revealed. And the wives of the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ got together as a result of the jealousy between them, and I said to them. " It may be if he divorced you(all) that his lord will give him instead of you, wives better than you"[at Tahreem 66:5], and it was revealed like that.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 157
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 157

314

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (2419) and Muslim (818)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุฑู’ูˆูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ูˆูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุฎู’ุฑูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ู‡ูุดูŽุงู…ูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุญูŽูƒููŠู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูุฒูŽุงู…ู ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู ุณููˆุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ููุฑู’ู‚ูŽุงู†ู ููŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽ ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ุญูุฑููˆูู‹ุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽูƒูู†ู’ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽู†ููŠู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฑูŽุฏู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูุณูŽุงูˆูุฑูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ููŽุฑูŽุบูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽูƒูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑูŽุงุกูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูƒูŽุฐูŽุจู’ุชูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ู‡ูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽูƒูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ุชู ุจููŠูŽุฏูู‡ู ุฃูŽู‚ููˆุฏูู‡ู ููŽุงู†ู’ุทูŽู„ูŽู‚ู’ุชู ุจูู‡ู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู’ุชูŽู†ููŠ ุณููˆุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ููุฑู’ู‚ูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ุญูุฑููˆูู‹ุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุชูŽูƒูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู’ุชูŽู†ููŠู‡ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู’ ูŠูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽุงู…ู ููŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‡ูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ุฃูู†ู’ุฒูู„ูŽุชู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู’ ูŠูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ููŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃู’ุชู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ุฃูู†ู’ุฒูู„ูŽุชู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ูŽ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุณูŽุจู’ุนูŽุฉู ุฃูŽุญู’ุฑููู.

It was narrated from al Miswar bin Makhramah that 'Umar bin al Khattab said:

I heard Hisham bin Hakeem bin Hizam reciting Sooratal-Furqan and he recited some words differently from how the Prophet of Allah had taught it to me. I wanted to argue with him, but I was praying. When I finished, I said: Who taught you this recitation? He said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ. I said: You are lying; by Allah, this is not how the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ taught it to you. I took him by the hand and brought him to the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ, and said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , you taught me how to recite Soorat al Furqaan, and I heard this man reciting some words in a way that was not the way you taught them to me. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "Recite it, O. Hisham.โ€ He recited it as he recited it before. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "Thus it was revealed.โ€ Then he said: "Recite it, O Umar.โ€ So I recited it and he said: โ€œThus it was revealed.โ€ Then the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: โ€œThe Qur'an has been revealed in seven different ways."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 158
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 158

315

Sahih (Darussalam) [its isnad is Hasan]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู‡ูŽูŠู’ุซูŽู…ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูู…ูŽุงูƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูŽุฑู’ุจู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุนู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุจูŽุดููŠุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู„ู’ุชูŽูˆููŠ ู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฌูุฏู ู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽู…ู’ู„ูŽุฃู ุจูู‡ู ุจูŽุทู’ู†ูŽู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽู‚ูŽู„ู.

It was narrated that สผUmar said:

I saw the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ feeling the pain of hunger and not being able to find enough to fill his stomach of inferior quality dates.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 159
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 159

316

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (1534)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽุฏููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ูŽุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ูˆูŽุงููŽู‚ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ูููŠ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ูˆูŽุงููŽู‚ูŽู†ููŠ ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ูููŠ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุงุชู‘ูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ุชูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ู…ูุตูŽู„ู‘ู‹ู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ [[[{ ูˆูŽุงุชู‘ูŽุฎูุฐููˆุง ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ู ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ู…ูุตูŽู„ู‘ู‹ู‰ }]]] ูˆูŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุญูŽุฌูŽุจู’ุชูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูŽ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ููŽุงุฌูุฑู ููŽุฃูู†ู’ุฒูู„ูŽุชู’ ุขูŠูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ุญูุฌูŽุงุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกูŒ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽูŠู’ุชูู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽุชูŽูƒููู‘ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู„ูŽูŠูุจู’ุฏูู„ูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจููƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงุฌู‹ุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ูŽุงุชู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฅูุญู’ุฏูŽู‰ ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ูŠูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ูููŠ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนูุธู ู†ูุณูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูŽุนูุธูŽู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ููŽูƒูŽููŽูู’ุชู ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ [[[{ ุนูŽุณูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุจู‘ูู‡ู ุฅูู†ู’ ุทูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‚ูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุจู’ุฏูู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงุฌู‹ุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ูŽุงุชู ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŽุงุชู ู‚ูŽุงู†ูุชูŽุงุชู }]]] ุงู„ู’ุขูŠูŽุฉูŽ.

It was narrated that Anas said, 'Umar said:

I agreed with my Lord, may He be glorified and exalted, in three matters - or my Lord agreed with me in three matters, I said: O Messenger of Allah, why don't you take the Maqarn of Ibraheem as a place of prayer? Then Allah revealed the verse: "And take you (people) the Maqam (place) of Ibraheem (Abraham) [or the stone on which

Ibraheem (Abraham) stood while he was building the Ka'bah) as a place of prayer" (al Baqarah 2:125). And I said: Why don't you tell the Mothers of the Believers to observe hijab, for both righteous people and evildoers enter upon you? Then the verse of hijab was revealed. And I heard something about the Mothers of the Believers, so I talked to them and told them: You should stop bothering the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ , or Allah will replace you with wives who are better than you and are Muslims. Then I came to one of the Mothers of the Believers and she said: O 'Umar, is it the case that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ cannot admonish his wives so that you come and admonish them? So I stopped, then Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, revealed the verse: โ€œIt may be if he divorced you (all) that his Lord will give him instead of you, wives better than you Muslims (who submit to Allah), believers, obedient (to Allah)..." [atยญ-Tahreerm 66:5)
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 160
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 160

317

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (402)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽูˆู’ุฒูŽุงุนููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูƒูŽุซููŠุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนููƒู’ุฑูู…ูŽุฉูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุจูุงู„ู’ุนูŽู‚ููŠู‚ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฃูŽุชูŽุงู†ููŠ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุฉูŽ ุขุชู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฑูŽุจู‘ููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ู ูููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุฏููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุจูŽุงุฑูŽูƒู ูˆูŽู‚ูู„ู’ ุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉูŒ ูููŠ ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ููŠุฏู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุญูู„ูŽูŠู’ููŽุฉู.

Ibn 'Abbas said: I heard 'Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ say:

l heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say, when he was in alยญ'Aqeeq: "Last night someone came to me from my Lord and said: Pray in this blessed valley and say, 'I intend to do 'umrah with Hajj." Al-Waleed said: i.e., in Dhulยญ-Hulaifah.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 161
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 161

318

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (2134) and Muslim (1586)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ู…ูŽุงู„ููƒูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ุณู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏูŽุซูŽุงู†ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุงู„ุฐู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุจู ุจูุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุฑูู‚ู ุฑูุจู‹ุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุจูุฑู‘ู ุจูุงู„ู’ุจูุฑู‘ู ุฑูุจู‹ุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุนููŠุฑู ุจูุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุนููŠุฑู ุฑูุจู‹ุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ุชู‘ูŽู…ู’ุฑู ุจูุงู„ุชู‘ูŽู…ู’ุฑู ุฑูุจู‹ุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ูŽุงุกูŽ.

Malik bin 'Aws bin al-Hadathan heard 'Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ say:

The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said ยญ- and on one occasion Sufyan said: ['Umar] heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say ยญ โ€œGold for silver is riba unless it is exchanged on the spot [lit. โ€˜this for that'), wheat for wheat is riba unless it is exchanged on the spot, barley for barley is riba unless it is exchanged on the spot, dates for dates is riba unless it is exchanged on the spot.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 162
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 162

319

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (1990) and Muslim (1137)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุดูŽู‡ูุฏู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุนููŠุฏูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุจูŽุฏูŽุฃูŽ ุจูุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูุทู’ุจูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุตููŠูŽุงู…ู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ููุทู’ุฑู ููŽููุทู’ุฑููƒูู…ู’ ู…ูู†ู’ ุตูŽูˆู’ู…ููƒูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุถู’ุญูŽู‰ ููŽูƒูู„ููˆุง ู…ูู†ู’ ู„ูŽุญู’ู…ู ู†ูุณููƒููƒูู…ู’.

Abu โ€˜Ubaid said:

I was present at Eid with โ€˜Umar, and he started with the prayer before the khutbah. He said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ forbade fasting on

these two days. The day of al-Fitr is the day when you break your fast, and on the day of al-Adha,

eat the meat of your sacrifices.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 163
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 163

320

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2462) and Muslim (1691)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูุทู’ุฑููˆู†ููŠ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุทู’ุฑูŽุชู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุตูŽุงุฑูŽู‰ ุนููŠุณูŽู‰ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู’ูŠูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงู… ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŒ ููŽู‚ููˆู„ููˆุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู.

It was narrated that 'Umar said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said:

โ€œDo not praise me as the Christians praised 'Eesa ibn Maryam ุนู„ูŠู‡ ุงู„ุณู„ุงู…. I am no more than a slave, so say: His slave and His Messenger.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 164
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 164

321

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏููŠู†ูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠูŽู†ูŽุงู…ู ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุฌูู†ูุจูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู ูˆูŽูŠูŽู†ูŽุงู…ู ุฅูู†ู’ ุดูŽุงุกูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ู„ููŠูŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู’ ูˆูŽู„ู’ูŠูŽู†ูŽู…ู’.

It was narrated from Ibn 'Umar, from สผUmar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ that he asked the Prophet ๏ทบ:

Can one of us sleep when he is junub? He said: โ€œHe may do wudooโ€™ and sleep if he wishes.โ€ On one occasion

Sufyan said: "Let him do wudooโ€™ and sleep."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 165
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 165

322

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1490) and Muslim (1620)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุญูŽู…ูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ููŽุฑูŽุณู ูููŠ ุณูŽุจููŠู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽุฑูŽุขู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุจูŽุนู’ุถูŽ ู†ูุชูŽุงุฌูู‡ูŽุง ูŠูุจูŽุงุนู ููŽุฃูŽุฑูŽุงุฏูŽ ุดูุฑูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุชู’ุฑููƒู’ู‡ูŽุง ุชููˆูŽุงูููƒูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุชูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฌูŽู…ููŠุนู‹ุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ููŽู†ูŽู‡ูŽุงู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุดู’ุชูŽุฑูู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุนูุฏู’ ูููŠ ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุชููƒูŽ.

It was narrated from Zaid bin Aslarn, from his father that

โ€˜Umar gave a horse (to a man for jihad) for the sake of Allah, then he saw it or one of its foals being offered for sale, and he wanted to buy it. He asked the

Prophet ๏ทบ about it and he said: "Leave it, and it (its reward) will come to you or you will have them all (i.e., the reward of all of them)." On one occasion he said: He told him not to (buy it) and he said:

โ€œDo not buy it and do not take back your charity."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 166
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 166

323

[Sahih lighairihi: this isnad is da'eef because of the weakness of 'Asim binโ€˜ Ubaidullah]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽุจู’ู„ูุบู ุจูู‡ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุชูŽุงุจูุนููˆุง ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุชูŽุงุจูŽุนูŽุฉู‹ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽู‡ูู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽู†ู’ูููŠูŽุงู†ู ุงู„ู’ููŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ุฐู‘ูู†ููˆุจูŽ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽู†ู’ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ูƒููŠุฑู ุฎูŽุจูŽุซูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏููŠุฏู.

It was narrated from 'Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ , conveyed from the Prophet ๏ทบ ยญon one occasion, Sufyan said: from the Prophet ๏ทบ- that he said:

"Follow Hajj with โ€˜Umrah and 'Umrah with Hajj, for doing that will eliminate poverty and sin as the bellows eliminate dross."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 167
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 167

324

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1) and Muslim (1907)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ุงู„ุชู‘ูŽูŠู’ู…ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ูˆูŽู‚ู‘ูŽุงุตู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุงู„ู ุจูุงู„ู†ู‘ููŠู‘ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู„ููƒูู„ู‘ู ุงู…ู’ุฑูุฆู ู…ูŽุง ู†ูŽูˆูŽู‰ ููŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ู‡ูุฌู’ุฑูŽุชูู‡ู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ููŽู‡ูุฌู’ุฑูŽุชูู‡ู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุฌูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ู‡ูุฌู’ุฑูŽุชูู‡ู ู„ูุฏูู†ู’ูŠูŽุง ูŠูุตููŠุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุฉู ูŠูŽู†ู’ูƒูุญูู‡ูŽุง ููŽู‡ูุฌู’ุฑูŽุชูู‡ู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุฌูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู.

Umar said: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say:

"Deeds are but by intentions and each

man will have but that which he intended. If a man's migration was for the sake of Allah, then his

migration was for that for which he migrated, but if his migration was to achieve some worldly aim

or to take some woman in marriage, his migration was for that for which he migrated."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 168
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 168

325

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู„ูุจูŽุงุจูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูˆูŽุงุฆูู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุนู’ุจูŽุฏู ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ู†ูŽุตู’ุฑูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ููŽุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ู’ุชู ููŽุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ูŽู„ู’ุชู ุจูุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉู ููŽุณูŽู…ูุนูŽู†ููŠ ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุตููˆุญูŽุงู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูู‡ูู„ู‘ู ุจูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ู„ูŽู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽุถูŽู„ู‘ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽุนููŠุฑู ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ูู‡ู ููŽูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุญูู…ูู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุจููƒูŽู„ูู…ูŽุชูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฌูŽุจูŽู„ูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุฏูู…ู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑู’ุชูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽู„ูŽุงู…ูŽู‡ูู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูุฏููŠุชูŽ ู„ูุณูู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‡ูุฏููŠุชูŽ ู„ูุณูู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ููƒูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ูˆูŽุงุฆูู„ู ูƒูŽุซููŠุฑู‹ุง ู…ูŽุง ุฐูŽู‡ูŽุจู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู…ูŽุณู’ุฑููˆู‚ูŒ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ู†ูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู.

It was narrated that Abu Wa'il said: asยญ-Subayy bin Ma'bad said:

I was a Christian man and I became Muslim, and I entered ihram for both Hajj and 'Umrah (together). Zaid bin Soohan and Salman bin Rabee'ah heard me ยญยญยญwhen I was entering ihram for both and said. He is more astray than his people's camel. Their words wounded me greatly, so I went to โ€˜Umar and told him. He turned to them and criticised them, then he turned to me and said: You have been guided to the Sunnah of your Prophet ๏ทบ, you have been guided to the Sunnah of your Prophet ๏ทบ.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 169
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 169

326

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2223) and Muslim (1582)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุทูŽุงูˆูุณู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฐููƒูุฑูŽ ู„ูุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุฑูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุจูŽุงุนูŽ ุฎูŽู…ู’ุฑู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงุชูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุนูŽู†ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏูŽ ุญูุฑู‘ูู…ูŽุชู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ุดู‘ูุญููˆู…ู ููŽุฌูŽู…ูŽู„ููˆู‡ูŽุง ููŽุจูŽุงุนููˆู‡ูŽุง.

It was narrated from Ibn 'Abbas:โ€˜Umar was told ยญand on one occasion he said:

Umar heard that Samurah was selling alcohol and he said: May Allah destroy Samurah. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "May Allah curse the Jews,

He forbade animal fat to them, so they rendered it and sold it."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 170
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 170

327

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2904) and Muslim (1757)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุงู„ููƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ุณู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏูŽุซูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ู ุจูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุถููŠุฑู ู…ูู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽููŽุงุกูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูู…ู‘ูŽุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠููˆุฌููู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููˆู†ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุจูุฎูŽูŠู’ู„ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุฑููƒูŽุงุจู ููŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ู„ูุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฎูŽุงู„ูุตูŽุฉู‹ ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูู†ู’ููู‚ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ูู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ู†ูŽููŽู‚ูŽุฉูŽ ุณูŽู†ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ู‚ููˆุชูŽ ุณูŽู†ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ุจูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุฌูŽุนูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ูƒูุฑูŽุงุนู ูˆูŽุงู„ุณู‘ูู„ูŽุงุญู ุนูุฏู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ูููŠ ุณูŽุจููŠู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ.

!t was narrated that 'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said:

The wealth of Banu an-ยญNadeer was among the fai' that Allah bestowed upon His Messenger ๏ทบ, for which the Muslims made no expedition with either cavalry or camelry (cf. al-Hashr 59:6). It was only for the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ and he used to spend from it on his family's annual expenses-and on one occasion he said: his annual

food supply ยญ-and what was left he spent on horses and weapons in preparation for jihad for the sake of Allah, may He be glorified and exalted,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 171
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 171

328

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุงู„ููƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูˆู’ูู ูˆูŽุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ู†ูŽุดูŽุฏู’ุชููƒูู…ู’ ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ุชูŽู‚ููˆู…ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽู…ูŽุงุกู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ุถู ุจูู‡ู ุฃูŽุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู„ูŽุง ู†ููˆุฑูŽุซู ู…ูŽุง ุชูŽุฑูŽูƒู’ู†ูŽุง ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุฉูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’.

It was narrated that Malik bin Aws said:

I heard 'Umar say to โ€˜Abdurยญ-Rahman bin โ€˜Awf,

Talhah, az-ยญZubair and Sa'd: We adjure you by Allah, by whom heaven and earth are sustained,

did you know that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œOur (Prophetsโ€™) property is not to be inherited

and whatever we leave behind is charity." They said: By Allah, yes,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 172
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 172

329

[Sahih lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูŽูู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ูŽุฏู ู„ูู„ู’ููุฑูŽุงุดู.

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said:

"The child belongs to the (husband or master of the) woman."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 173
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 173

330

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (686)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุฏู’ุฑููŠุณูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฌู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุจูŽุงุจูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูู…ูŽูŠู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู [[[{ ู„ูŽูŠู’ุณูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูู…ู’ ุฌูู†ูŽุงุญูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽู‚ู’ุตูุฑููˆุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุฅูู†ู’ ุฎููู’ุชูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽูู’ุชูู†ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ูƒูŽููŽุฑููˆุง }]]] ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽู†ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุนูŽุฌูุจู’ุชู ู…ูู…ู‘ูŽุง ุนูŽุฌูุจู’ุชูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุฉูŒ ุชูŽุตูŽุฏู‘ูŽู‚ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจูู‡ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูู…ู’ ููŽุงู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ููˆุง ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุชูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated that Ya'la bin Umayyah said:I said to 'Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ ,

"And when you (Muslims) travel in

the land, there is no sin on you if you shorten AsยญSalah (the prayer) if you fear that the disbelievers may put you in

trial (attack you)" (al Nisa' 4:101]. But now the people are safe. He said: I wondered the same thing as you are

wondering, and I asked the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ about that. He said: โ€œIt is a charity that Allah has bestowed upon

you, so accept His charity."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 174
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 174

331

Two Sahih isnads)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู…ูุนูŽุงูˆููŠูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุจูุนูŽุฑูŽููŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู…ูุนูŽุงูˆููŠูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฎูŽูŠู’ุซูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุฑู’ูˆูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุชูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฌูุฆู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูƒููˆููŽุฉู ูˆูŽุชูŽุฑูŽูƒู’ุชู ุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ูŠูู…ู’ู„ููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุตูŽุงุญูููŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุธูŽู‡ู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽู„ู’ุจูู‡ู ููŽุบูŽุถูุจูŽ ูˆูŽุงู†ู’ุชูŽููŽุฎูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูƒูŽุงุฏูŽ ูŠูŽู…ู’ู„ูŽุฃู ู…ูŽุง ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุชูŽูŠู’ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู„ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ู‡ููˆูŽ ูˆูŽูŠู’ุญูŽูƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุณู’ุนููˆุฏู ููŽู…ูŽุง ุฒูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูุทู’ููŽุฃู ูˆูŽูŠูุณูŽุฑู‘ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุถูŽุจู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุงุฏูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุญูŽุงู„ูู‡ู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽูŠู’ุญูŽูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ูู‡ู ุจูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูŒ ู‡ููˆูŽ ุฃูŽุญูŽู‚ู‘ู ุจูุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽุฃูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซููƒูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฒูŽุงู„ู ูŠูŽุณู’ู…ูุฑู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุฉูŽ ูƒูŽุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููŠู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ุฐูŽุงุชูŽ ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ููŽุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู‚ูŽุงุฆูู…ูŒ ูŠูุตูŽู„ู‘ููŠ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽุณู’ุชูŽู…ูุนู ู‚ูุฑูŽุงุกูŽุชูŽู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูุฏู’ู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุนู’ุฑูููŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุฑู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุทู’ุจู‹ุง ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูู†ู’ุฒูู„ูŽ ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูุฑูŽุงุกูŽุฉู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูู…ู‘ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฌูŽู„ูŽุณูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ูŠูŽุฏู’ุนููˆ ููŽุฌูŽุนูŽู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู„ู’ ุชูุนู’ุทูŽู‡ู’ ุณูŽู„ู’ ุชูุนู’ุทูŽู‡ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุฃูŽุบู’ุฏููˆูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽุฃูุจูŽุดู‘ูุฑูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุบูŽุฏูŽูˆู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ู„ูุฃูุจูŽุดู‘ูุฑูŽู‡ู ููŽูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ุชู ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุณูŽุจูŽู‚ูŽู†ููŠ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽุจูŽุดู‘ูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุณูŽุจูŽู‚ู’ุชูู‡ู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุทู‘ู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ูˆูŽุณูŽุจูŽู‚ูŽู†ููŠ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู.

It was narrated from Qais bin Marwan that he came to 'Umar and said:

I have come from Koofah, O Ameer al-ยญMu'mineen, and I left behind in it a man who dictates the Mushaf From memory. โ€˜Umar got exceedingly angry and said: Who is he, woe to you? He said: 'Abdullah bin Mas'ood. โ€˜Umar began to calm down, and went back to normal, then he said: Woe to you, I do not know of anyone who is more qualified to do that than him, and I will tell you about that. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ used to stay up at night talking with Abu Bakr ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ discussing some affairs of the Muslims. He stayed up talking with him one night, and I was with him. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ went out, and we went out with him, and we saw a man standing and praying in the mosque. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ listened to his recitation, and as soon as we recognised him the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: "Whoever would like to recite the Qur'an fresh as it was revealed, let him recite it according to the recitation of Ibn Umm 'Abd." Then the same man sat and offered supplication (du'a') and the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ started saying to him: "Ask, you will be given;ask, you will be given.โ€ โ€˜Umar said: By Allah, I shall go to him tomorrow and tell hirm the glad tidings. I went to him the next morning to tell him the glad tidings, and I found that Abu Bakr had beaten me to it and given him the glad tidings. By Allah, I never competed with him to do good but he beat me to it.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 175
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 175

332

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al Bukhari (1597) and Muslim (1270)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู…ูุนูŽุงูˆููŠูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุจูุณู ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู„ูŽุฃูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ููƒูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑูŒ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ููƒูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ู’ูƒูŽ.

It was narrated that 'Abis bin Rabee'ah said:

I saw 'Umar kissing the Black Stone and saying; I am kissing you and I know that you are just a stone; if I had not seen the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ kissing you, I would not have kissed you.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 176
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 176

333

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฌูŽุฑููŠุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู„ููƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽู…ูุฑูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ุจูุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุงุจููŠูŽุฉู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ูููŠ ู…ูุซู’ู„ู ู…ูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุญู’ุณูู†ููˆุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจููŠ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ูŠูŽู„ููˆู†ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ูŠูŽู„ููˆู†ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽุฌููŠุกู ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ูŒ ูŠูŽุญู’ู„ููู ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู…ููŠู†ู ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุณู’ุชูŽุญู’ู„ูŽููŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ูˆูŽูŠูŽุดู’ู‡ูŽุฏู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุณู’ุชูŽุดู’ู‡ูŽุฏูŽ ููŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุญูŽุจู‘ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู†ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุจูุญู’ุจููˆุญูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽู„ู’ุฒูŽู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู…ูŽุงุนูŽุฉูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽูŠู’ุทูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏู ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ูุงุซู’ู†ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจู’ุนูŽุฏู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฎู’ู„ููˆูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ุจูุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุฉู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุซูŽุงู„ูุซูŽู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽูŠู’ุทูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู…ู’ ุชูŽุณูุฑู‘ูู‡ู ุญูŽุณูŽู†ูŽุชูู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูŽุณููˆุกูู‡ู ุณูŽูŠู‘ูุฆูŽุชูู‡ู ููŽู‡ููˆูŽ ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŒ.

It was narrated that Jabir bin Samurah said:

Umar addressed the people in alยญ-Jabiyah, and said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ stood as I am standing and said: "Treat my Companions kindly, then those who come after them, then those who come after them. Then there will come people who will swear oaths before being asked to swear and will give testimony before being asked to

give testimony. Whoever among you would like to attain the best place in Paradise, let him adhere to the jama'ah (the main body of Muslims), for the Shaitan is with one and he is further away from two. No man should be alone with a woman because the Shaitan will be the third one present. Whoever feels pleased when he does a good deed and feels bad when he does an evil deed is a believer.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 177
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 177

334

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู…ูุนูŽุงูˆููŠูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽุณู’ู…ูุฑู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุฉูŽ ูƒูŽุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููŠู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated that สผUmar said:

The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ used to stay up at night talking with Abu Bakr ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡, discussing some affairs of the Muslims, and I was with him.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 178
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 178

335

Sahih (Darussalam) Muslim (567)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุณู’ู…ูŽุงุนููŠู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽุฑููˆุจูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุนู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุนู’ุฏูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ุฃูŽูƒู’ุซูŽุฑูŽ ู…ูู…ู‘ูŽุง ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุทูŽุนูŽู†ูŽ ุจูุฅูุตู’ุจูŽุนูู‡ู ูููŠ ุตูŽุฏู’ุฑููŠ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุชูŽูƒู’ูููŠูƒูŽ ุขูŠูŽุฉู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽูŠู’ูู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ูููŠ ุขุฎูุฑู ุณููˆุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุณูŽุงุกู.

It was narrated that Ma'dan bin Abi Talhah said: 'Umar said:

I never asked the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ about anything more than I asked him about kalalah, until he poked me in the chest with his finger and said: "Is not ayatus-saif (the verse of summer, i.e., it was revealed in summer), which appears at the end of Sooratan-Nisa', sufficient for you?โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 179
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 179

336

Sahih (Darussalam) [al-Bukhari (1292) and Muslim (927)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุจู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽูŠู‘ูุชู ูŠูุนูŽุฐู‘ูŽุจู ูููŠ ู‚ูŽุจู’ุฑูู‡ู ุจูุงู„ู†ู‘ููŠูŽุงุญูŽุฉู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู.

lt was narrated from โ€˜Umar that the Prophet ๏ทบ said:

โ€œThe deceased is tormented in his grave because of the wailing over him."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 180
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 180

337

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (2069)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู„ููƒู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุณู’ู…ูŽุงุกูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฑู’ุณูŽู„ูŽุชู’ู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุณู’ู…ูŽุงุกู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุชูุญูŽุฑู‘ูู…ู ุฃูŽุดู’ูŠูŽุงุกูŽ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽุฉู‹ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽูˆู’ุจู ูˆูŽู…ููŠุซูŽุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูุฑู’ุฌููˆูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽุตูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูŽุจู ูƒูู„ู‘ูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽุง ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ุชูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุตูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุฑูŽุฌูŽุจู ููŽูƒูŽูŠู’ููŽ ุจูู…ูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุตููˆู…ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุจูŽุฏูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽุง ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ุชูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽู„ูŽู…ู ูููŠ ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽูˆู’ุจู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุจูุณูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฑููŠุฑูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูู†ู’ูŠูŽุง ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽู„ู’ุจูŽุณู’ู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑูŽุฉู.

It was narrated that โ€˜Abdullah, the freed slave of Asmaโ€™ bint Abi Bakr, said:

Asmaโ€™ sent me to 'Abdullah bin 'Umar, and she said: I have heard that you regard three things as haram: borders on garments, saddle cloths made of bright red cloth, and fasting the whole of Rajab. 'Abdullah said to me: As for what you have mentioned about Rajab, what about one who fasts continually? As for what you said about borders on garments, I heard 'Umar bin al-Khattab say: I heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: โ€œWhoever wears silk in this world will not wear it in the Hereafter."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 181
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 181

338

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (2873)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุบููŠุฑูŽุฉู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุซูŽุงุจูุชูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ูŽุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉู ููŽุชูŽุฑูŽุงุกูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู‡ูู„ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูู†ู’ุชู ุญูŽุฏููŠุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุตูŽุฑู ููŽุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชูู‡ู ููŽุฌูŽุนูŽู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ุชูŽุฑูŽุงู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽุฑูŽุงู‡ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุณู’ุชูŽู„ู’ู‚ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ููุฑูŽุงุดููŠ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐูŽ ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซูู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุจูŽุฏู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽูŠูุฑููŠู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุตูŽุงุฑูุนูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุจูุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุณู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ู…ูŽุตู’ุฑูŽุนู ููู„ูŽุงู†ู ุบูŽุฏู‹ุง ุฅูู†ู’ ุดูŽุงุกูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ ูˆูŽู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ู…ูŽุตู’ุฑูŽุนู ููู„ูŽุงู†ู ุบูŽุฏู‹ุง ุฅูู†ู’ ุดูŽุงุกูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฌูŽุนูŽู„ููˆุง ูŠูุตู’ุฑูŽุนููˆู†ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ุจูŽุนูŽุซูŽูƒูŽ ุจูุงู„ู’ุญูŽู‚ู‘ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎู’ุทูŽุฆููˆุง ุชููŠูƒูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ููˆุง ูŠูุตู’ุฑูŽุนููˆู†ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจูู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽุทูุฑูุญููˆุง ูููŠ ุจูุฆู’ุฑู ููŽุงู†ู’ุทูŽู„ูŽู‚ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ููู„ูŽุงู†ู ูŠูŽุง ููู„ูŽุงู†ู ู‡ูŽู„ู’ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ุชูู…ู’ ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽู‚ู‘ู‹ุง ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ุชู ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽู‚ู‘ู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุชููƒูŽู„ู‘ูู…ู ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฌูŽูŠู‘ูŽูููˆุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูู…ู’ ุจูุฃูŽุณู’ู…ูŽุนูŽ ู„ูู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุณู’ุชูŽุทููŠุนููˆู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุฌููŠุจููˆุง.

It was narrated that Anas said:

We were with 'Umar between Makkah and Madinah, and we looked for the new crescent moon. I was sharp sighted and I saw it, and I started saying to โ€˜Umar, Don't you see it? He said: I will see it when I am lying in my bed. Then he started telling us about the people of Badr. He said: the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ was showing us the places where they would fall (in battle), saying: โ€œThis is where So and so will fall in battle tomorrow, if Allah wills; this is where So and so will fall in battle tomorrow, if Allah wills.โ€ And they started to fall in those places, I said: By the One who sent you with the truth, they did not miss those places; they fell in those places. Then he ordered that they be thrown into a well, and he went to them and said: "O So and so, O So and so, did you find what Allah promised you to be true? For I found what Allah promised me to be true." 'Umar said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , are you speaking to people who are now dead? He said: "You do not hear what I am saying any better than they do, but they cannot answer."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 182
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 182

339

[Hasan (Darussalam) []
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูุณูŽูŠู’ู†ูŒ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุนูŽู„ู‘ูู…ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ุดูุนูŽูŠู’ุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุฏู‘ูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฑูŽุฌูŽุนูŽ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑูŒูˆ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ุจูŽู†ููˆ ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูŽุจููŠุจู ูŠูุฎูŽุงุตูู…ููˆู†ูŽู‡ู ูููŠ ูˆูŽู„ูŽุงุกู ุฃูุฎู’ุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุถููŠ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุจูู…ูŽุง ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุญู’ุฑูŽุฒูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽู„ูŽุฏู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูุฏู ููŽู‡ููˆูŽ ู„ูุนูŽุตูŽุจูŽุชูู‡ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุถูŽู‰ ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ุจูู‡ู.

Amr bin Shu'aib narrated, from his father, that his grandfather said:

When 'Amr came back, Banu Ma'mar came to him and they referred their dispute with him concerning the wala' of their sister to 'Umar. 'Umar ยญุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said, I will judge between you according to what I heard from the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ . I heard him say: โ€œWhat the son or father acquires goes to his agnates, no matter who they are.โ€ So he ruled in our favour,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 183
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 183

340

Sahih (Darussalam) Muslim (8)
ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุซู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุบููŠูŽุงุซู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุจูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽุญูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูู…ู’ูŠูŽุฑููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ู„ูŽู‚ููŠู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุฏูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ููˆู†ูŽ ูููŠู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฑูŽุฌูŽุนู’ุชูู…ู’ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽู‚ููˆู„ููˆุง ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู…ู’ ุจูŽุฑููŠุกูŒ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูู…ู’ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ุจูุฑูŽุขุกู ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽ ู…ูุฑูŽุงุฑู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ู‡ูู…ู’ ุฌูู„ููˆุณูŒ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูุนููˆุฏูŒ ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ูŠูŽู…ู’ุดููŠ ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุฌู’ู‡ู ุญูŽุณูŽู†ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุนู’ุฑู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุซููŠูŽุงุจู ุจูŽูŠูŽุงุถู ููŽู†ูŽุธูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุจูŽุนู’ุถูู‡ูู…ู’ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุจูŽุนู’ุถู ู…ูŽุง ู†ูŽุนู’ุฑููู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุจูุตูŽุงุญูุจู ุณูŽููŽุฑู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุขุชููŠูƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ููŽุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽูˆูŽุถูŽุนูŽ ุฑููƒู’ุจูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุฑููƒู’ุจูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ููŽุฎูุฐูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฅูุณู’ู„ูŽุงู…ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุดูŽู‡ูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‡ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู‹ุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูู‚ููŠู…ู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุชูุคู’ุชููŠ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูŽูƒูŽุงุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุชูŽุตููˆู…ู ุฑูŽู…ูŽุถูŽุงู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุชูŽุญูุฌู‘ู ุงู„ู’ุจูŽูŠู’ุชูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู…ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฅููŠู…ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŽ ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู„ูŽุงุฆููƒูŽุชูู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุจูŽุนู’ุซู ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽูˆู’ุชู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุฏูŽุฑู ูƒูู„ู‘ูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู…ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฅูุญู’ุณูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุนู’ู…ูŽู„ูŽ ู„ูู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุชูŽุฑูŽุงู‡ู ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุชูŽูƒูู†ู’ ุชูŽุฑูŽุงู‡ู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุฑูŽุงูƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู…ูŽุชูŽู‰ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุงุนูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฆููˆู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ุจูุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุงุฆูู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุดู’ุฑูŽุงุทูู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุนูุฑูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ู’ุญูููŽุงุฉู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ุฑูุนูŽุงุกู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุงุกู ุชูŽุทูŽุงูˆูŽู„ููˆุง ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุจูู†ู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽูˆูŽู„ูŽุฏูŽุชู’ ุงู„ู’ุฅูู…ูŽุงุกู ุฑูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุชูู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ูŽ ููŽุทูŽู„ูŽุจููˆู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽุฑูŽูˆู’ุง ุดูŽูŠู’ุฆู‹ุง ููŽู…ูŽูƒูŽุซูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽุฉู‹ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฃูŽุชูŽุฏู’ุฑููŠ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุงุฆูู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ุฌูุจู’ุฑููŠู„ู ุฌูŽุงุกูŽูƒูู…ู’ ูŠูุนูŽู„ู‘ูู…ููƒูู…ู’ ุฏููŠู†ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูู‡ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุฉูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู…ูุฒูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุฉูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูููŠู…ูŽุง ู†ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽู„ู ุฃูŽูููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฎูŽู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู…ูŽุถูŽู‰ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ูููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ูŠูุณู’ุชูŽุฃู’ู†ูŽูู ุงู„ู’ุขู†ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฎูŽู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู…ูŽุถูŽู‰ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุจูŽุนู’ุถู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูููŠู…ูŽุง ู†ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ูŠููŠูŽุณู‘ูŽุฑููˆู†ูŽ ู„ูุนูŽู…ูŽู„ู ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ูŠููŠูŽุณู‘ูŽุฑููˆู†ูŽ ู„ูุนูŽู…ูŽู„ู ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ููˆูŽ ู‡ูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃู’ุชูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ.

It was narrated that Yahya bin Ya'mar and Humaid bin โ€˜Abdurยญ-Rahman alยญ-Himyari said:

We met 'Abdullah bin 'Umar and discussed the divine decree (al qadar) and what others said concerning it. He said: When you go back to them, say; Ibn โ€˜Umar has nothing to do with you and you have nothing to do with him - three times. Then he said: โ€˜Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ ยญยญ told me that whilst they were sitting with the Prophet ๏ทบ ยญ, a man came to him walking, with a handsome face and hair, wearing white clothes. The people looked at one another (as if to say): We do not know this man and he does not look like a traveller. Then he said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , shall I come to you? He said: "Yes." So he came and put his knees against his knees and his hands on his thighs and said: What is Islam? He said: "To testify that there is no god but Allah and that Muhammad is the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , to establish regular prayer, to give zakah, to fast Ramadan and to go on pilgrimage to the House." He said: What is faith (eeman)? He said: โ€œTo believe in Allah, His angels, Paradise and Hell, resurrection

after death and the divine decree, all of it.โ€ He said: What is ihsan? He said: "To strive for the sake of Allah as if you see Him, and even though you do not see Him, He sees you." He said: When will the Hour come? He said: "The one who is asked about it does not know more than the one who is asking.โ€ He

said: What are its portents? He said: "When the destitute, barefoot, naked shepherds compete in constructing lofty buildings, and the slave women give birth to their masters.โ€ Then he said: "Call the man to me.โ€ They looked for him but they saw no trace of him. Two or three days passed, then he said: โ€œO Ibn alยญ Khattab, do you know who that was who asked about such and such?โ€ He said: Allah and His Messenger know best. He said: "That was Jibreel who came to teach you your religion." A man from Juhainah or Muzainah asked him: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , what are we striving for? Is it something that is already decided or is it something that is evolving right now? He said:"For some-ยญthing that is already decided." The man or one of the people said: O Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) , then why should we strive? He said: โ€œThe people of Paradise will be enabled to do the deeds of the people of Paradise and the people of Hell will be enabled to do the deeds of the people of Hell." Yahya said: And that is how it is.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 184
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 184

341

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ูƒูู‡ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูƒูŽู…ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุจููŠุฐู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฏู‘ูุจู‘ูŽุงุกู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุจููŠุฐู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฏู‘ูุจู‘ูŽุงุกู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุฑู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูุญูŽุฑู‘ูู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุญูŽุฑู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ููŽู„ู’ูŠูุญูŽุฑู‘ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠุฐูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูุจู‘ูŽุงุกู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชู ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูุจู‘ูŽุงุกู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ู…ูุฒูŽูู‘ูŽุชู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุฎููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ุฏู‘ูุจู‘ูŽุงุกู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ู…ูุฒูŽูู‘ูŽุชู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุจูุณู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุงู„ุชู‘ูŽู…ู’ุฑู.

Abulยญ-Hakam said:

I asked Ibn 'Abbas about nabeedh made in earthenware jars. He said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ forbade nabeedh made in earthenware jars or gourds, and he said: Whoever would like to regard as haram that which Allah, may He be exalted, and His Messenger forbade, let him regard nabeedh as haram, He said. and I asked Ibn az-ยญZubair and he said: The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ forbade gourds and earthenware jars. He said: I asked Ibn 'Umar and he narrated from 'Umar that the Prophet ๏ทบ forbade gourds and varnished jars. My brother narrated to me from Abu Sa'eed that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ forbade earthenware jars, gourds, varnished jars, unripe dates, and dried dates,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 185
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 185

342

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (567)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽุงู…ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุนู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุนู’ุฏูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฏููŠูƒู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู†ูŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ู†ูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุฃูุฑูŽุงู‡ู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู„ูุญูุถููˆุฑู ุฃูŽุฌูŽู„ููŠ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ูˆูŽุงู…ู‹ุง ูŠูŽุฃู’ู…ูุฑููˆู†ููŠ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูููŽ ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽูƒูู†ู’ ู„ููŠูุถููŠุนูŽ ุฏููŠู†ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุฎูู„ูŽุงููŽุชูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ุจูŽุนูŽุซูŽ ุจูู‡ู ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ุนูŽุฌูู„ูŽ ุจููŠ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑูŒ ููŽุงู„ู’ุฎูู„ูŽุงููŽุฉู ุดููˆุฑูŽู‰ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุงู„ุณู‘ูุชู‘ูŽุฉู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠู†ูŽ ุชููˆููู‘ููŠูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุฑูŽุงุถู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ุณูŽูŠูŽุทู’ุนูู†ููˆู†ูŽ ูููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุถูŽุฑูŽุจู’ุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ุจููŠูŽุฏููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฅูุณู’ู„ูŽุงู…ู ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ููŽุนูŽู„ููˆุง ููŽุฃููˆู„ูŽุฆููƒูŽ ุฃูŽุนู’ุฏูŽุงุกู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽููŽุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ุถู‘ูู„ู‘ูŽุงู„ู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฏูŽุนู ุจูŽุนู’ุฏููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุฆู‹ุง ุฃูŽู‡ูŽู…ู‘ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุบู’ู„ูŽุธูŽ ู„ููŠ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ู…ูู†ู’ุฐู ุตูŽุงุญูŽุจู’ุชูู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุบู’ู„ูŽุธูŽ ู„ููŠ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ุฑูŽุงุฌูŽุนู’ุชูู‡ู ูููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ู…ูŽุง ุฑูŽุงุฌูŽุนู’ุชูู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽุงู„ูŽุฉู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุทูŽุนูŽู†ูŽ ุจูุฅูุตู’ุจูŽุนูู‡ู ูููŠ ุตูŽุฏู’ุฑููŠ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽูƒู’ูููŠูƒูŽ ุขูŠูŽุฉู ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽูŠู’ูู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ูููŠ ุขุฎูุฑู ุณููˆุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุณูŽุงุกู ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุนูุดู’ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุถููŠ ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุถููŠู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุถููŠ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ู…ูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุฃู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุฑู’ุขู†ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฃูุดู’ู‡ูุฏููƒูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูู…ูŽุฑูŽุงุกู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุจูŽุนูŽุซู’ุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ู„ููŠูุนูŽู„ู‘ูู…ููˆุง ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ุฏููŠู†ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุณูู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูู‡ูู…ู’ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽูŠูŽู‚ู’ุณูู…ููˆุง ูููŠู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽูŠู’ุฆูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽูŠูŽุนู’ุฏูู„ููˆุง ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽูŠูŽุฑู’ููŽุนููˆุง ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุดู’ูƒูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑูู‡ูู…ู’ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุชูŽุฃู’ูƒูู„ููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุดูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ู„ูŽุง ุฃูุฑูŽุงู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฎูŽุจููŠุซูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏูŽ ุฑููŠุญูŽู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู ุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจูู‡ู ููŽุฃูุฎูุฐูŽ ุจููŠูŽุฏูู‡ู ููŽุฃูุฎู’ุฑูุฌูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽู‚ููŠุนู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽูƒูŽู„ูŽู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽู„ู’ูŠูู…ูุชู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุทูŽุจู’ุฎู‹ุง.

It was narrated from Ma'dan bin Abi Talhah that 'Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ delivered a khutbah one Friday, and he mentioned the Prophet of Allah ๏ทบ and Abu Bakr ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡, He said:

I dreamt that a rooster pecked me twice, and I can only interpret it as meaning that my death is near, and there are

people who are telling me I should appoint someone to be my successor, but Allah will not cause His religion and the caliphate, with which He sent His Prophet ๏ทบ, to be lost. If death comes to me soon, then the caliphate is to be decided by these six men with whom the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ was pleased when he died. Whichever of them you swear allegiance to, then listen to him and obey. I know that some people will object to this matter. I have fought them with my own hands in the defence of Islam. If they do that, then they are the enemies of Allah and misguided kafirs. I am not leaving behind anything more important to me than kalalah. The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ never emphasised any issue to me since I accompanied him more than the issue of kalalah, and I did not ask him about anything more than I asked him about kalalah, until he poked me in the chest with his finger and said: โ€œO 'Umar, is not ayatusยญ-saif (the verse of summer, i.e. it was revealed in summer), which appears at the end of Soorat an-Nisa', sufficient for you?" If I live I will issue a decree that will be so clear that those who read the Qur'an and those who do not read it will be able to make decisions concerning it. Then he said. O Allah, I call upon You to bear witness over the governors of the regions, for I only sent them to teach the people their religion and the Sunnah of their Prophet and to the divide the fai' among them and to be just to them and to refer to me concerning any difficult matter, O people, you eat two plants which I find to be nothing but repugnant. I remember the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ, if he noticed their smell coming from a man in the mosque, he would issue orders

that he taken by the hand and led out to alยญ-Baqee', Whoever must eat them, let him cook them to death."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 186
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 186

343

Sahih bituruqihi and its isnad is da'eef because of the weakness of Mujalid]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ู†ูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูุฌูŽุงู„ูุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ู„ููŠ ุฃูŽุฑูŽุงูƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุดูŽุนูุซู’ุชูŽ ูˆูŽุงุบู’ุจูŽุฑูŽุฑู’ุชูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ุฐู ุชููˆููู‘ููŠูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽุนูŽู„ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุณูŽุงุกูŽูƒูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉู ุฅูู…ูŽุงุฑูŽุฉู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู‘ููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽุงุฐูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู„ูŽุฃูŽุฌู’ุฏูŽุฑููƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽูู’ุนูŽู„ูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู„ูŽุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ูƒูŽู„ูู…ูŽุฉู‹ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ูู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูŒ ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุญูŽุถู’ุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽูˆู’ุชู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏูŽ ุฑููˆุญูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฑูŽูˆู’ุญู‹ุง ุญููŠู†ูŽ ุชูŽุฎู’ุฑูุฌู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูŽุณูŽุฏูู‡ู ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ู„ูŽู‡ู ู†ููˆุฑู‹ุง ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ููŠูŽุงู…ูŽุฉู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ู’ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูุฎู’ุจูุฑู’ู†ููŠ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ููŽุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽู†ููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ูู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู„ูู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู…ู’ุฏู ููŽู…ูŽุง ู‡ููŠูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ููŠูŽ ุงู„ู’ูƒูŽู„ูู…ูŽุฉู ุงู„ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽู‡ูŽุง ู„ูุนูŽู…ู‘ูู‡ู ู„ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‡ูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉู ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ู’ุชูŽ.

It was narrated that Jabir bin โ€˜Abdullah said:

I heard 'Umar bin al-Khattab say to Talhah binโ€˜Ubaidullah: Why do I see you looking unkempt and dusty since the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ died? Perhaps you were upset about your cousin becoming caliph? He said: Allah forbid! I am the most unlikely among you to feel like that, I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "I know a word which, if a man says it when dying his soul will find rest and provision when it comes out from his body and it will be light for him on the Day of Resurrection.โ€ I did not ask the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ about it and he did not tell me it. This is what has been upsetting me. 'Umar said: I know what it is. He said: To Allah be praise! What is it? He said: It is the word that he said to his uncle: La ilaha illallah. Talhah said: You are right.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 187
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 187

344

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (45) and Muslim (3017)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูˆู’ู†ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูู…ูŽูŠู’ุณู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽูŠู’ุณู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุทูŽุงุฑูู‚ู ุจู’ู†ู ุดูู‡ูŽุงุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุชูŽู‚ู’ุฑูŽุกููˆู†ูŽ ุขูŠูŽุฉู‹ ูููŠ ูƒูุชูŽุงุจููƒูู…ู’ ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ุดูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏู ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ู„ูŽุงุชู‘ูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ู†ูŽุง ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุนููŠุฏู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽูŠู‘ู ุขูŠูŽุฉู ู‡ููŠูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ูู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ [[[{ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุฃูŽูƒู’ู…ูŽู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุฏููŠู†ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุชู’ู…ูŽู…ู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูู…ู’ ู†ูุนู’ู…ูŽุชููŠ }]]] ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู†ููŠ ู„ูŽุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ูููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุงุนูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุชููŠ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽุดููŠู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽุฑูŽููŽุฉูŽ ูููŠ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู.

It was narrated that Tariq bin Shihab said:

A Jewish man came to 'Umar and said: O Ameer al-Mu'mineen, you read a verse in your Book which, if it had been revealed to us Jews, we would have taken that day as a festival. He said: Which verse is it? He said: The verse: "This day, I have perfected your religion for you, completed My Favour upon youโ€ (al Ma'idah 5:3]. 'Umar said: By Allah, I know the day on which this was revealed to the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ and the hour at which it was revealed to the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ, on the afternoon of 'Arafah on a Friday.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 188
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 188

345

[Sahih (Darussalam) [).
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒููŠุนูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุงุฑูุซู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูŠู‘ูŽุงุดู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูŽูƒููŠู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูŽูƒููŠู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูู†ูŽูŠู’ูู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฃูู…ูŽุงู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูู†ูŽูŠู’ูู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ุฑูŽู…ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ุจูุณูŽู‡ู’ู…ู ููŽู‚ูŽุชูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ุณูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงุฑูุซูŒ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฎูŽุงู„ูŒ ููŽูƒูŽุชูŽุจูŽ ูููŠ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุญู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽูƒูŽุชูŽุจูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ู„ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุงู„ู ูˆูŽุงุฑูุซู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงุฑูุซูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู.

It was narrated from Abu Umamah bin Sahl bin Hunaif

that a man shot an arrow at another man and killed him, and he had no heir except a maternal uncle. Abu 'Ubaidah bin al-Jarrah wrote to โ€˜Umar concerning that and he wrote back saying that the Prophet ๏ทบ said: "Allah and His Messenger are the guardians of the one who has no guardian, and the maternal uncle is the heir of the one who has no heir.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 189
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 189

346

[A Hasan hadeeth]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒููŠุนูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูŠูŽุนู’ูููˆุฑู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุจู’ุฏููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุดูŽูŠู’ุฎู‹ุง ุจูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ูููŠ ุฅูู…ูŽุงุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽุงุฌู ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู‚ูŽูˆููŠู‘ูŒ ู„ูŽุง ุชูุฒูŽุงุญูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑู ููŽุชูุคู’ุฐููŠูŽ ุงู„ุถู‘ูŽุนููŠููŽ ุฅูู†ู’ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ุชูŽ ุฎูŽู„ู’ูˆูŽุฉู‹ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽู„ูู…ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽู‚ู’ุจูู„ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‡ูŽู„ู‘ูู„ู’ ูˆูŽูƒูŽุจู‘ูุฑู’.

It was narrated from สผUmar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ that the Prophet ๏ทบ said:

โ€œO โ€˜Umar, you are a strong man. Do not crowd others to touch the Black Stone, lest you harm the weak. If you find a gap, then touch it, otherwise turn to face it and say Lailaha illallah, and Allahu akbar."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 190
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 190

347

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (8)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒููŠุนูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูƒูŽู‡ู’ู…ูŽุณูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุจูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฌูุจู’ุฑููŠู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงู… ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฅููŠู…ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูุคู’ู…ูู†ูŽ ุจูุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู…ูŽู„ูŽุงุฆููƒูŽุชูู‡ู ูˆูŽูƒูุชูุจูู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูุณูู„ูู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูุฑู ูˆูŽุจูุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุฏูŽุฑู ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑูู‡ู ูˆูŽุดูŽุฑู‘ูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฌูุจู’ุฑููŠู„ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงู… ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ู’ุชูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุชูŽุนูŽุฌู‘ูŽุจู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ูู‡ู ูˆูŽูŠูุตูŽุฏู‘ูู‚ูู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ุฌูุจู’ุฑููŠู„ู ุฃูŽุชูŽุงูƒูู…ู’ ูŠูุนูŽู„ู‘ูู…ููƒูู…ู’ ู…ูŽุนูŽุงู„ูู…ูŽ ุฏููŠู†ููƒูู…ู’.

It was narrated from โ€™Umar that Jibreel ุนู„ูŠู‡ ุงู„ุณู„ุงู… said to the Prophet ๏ทบ:

What is faith (eeman)? He said:โ€œTo believe in Allah, His Angels, His Books, His Messengers, the Last Day and the divine decree, both good and bad,โ€ Jibreel said to him: You have spoken the truth. He said: We were amazed that he asked him and then confirmed his answers as being correct. The Prophet ๏ทบ said: โ€œThat was Jฤซbreel, who came to teach you your religion."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 191
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 191

348

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (1954) and Muslim (1100)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽูƒููŠุนูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽุงู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุฑู’ูˆูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูุฑู’ูˆูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽู‡ูู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฐูŽู‡ูŽุจูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽู‡ูู†ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽูู’ุทูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ุตู‘ูŽุงุฆูู…ู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุดู’ุฑูู‚ูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุบู’ุฑูุจูŽ.

It was narrated from 'Asim bin 'Umar that his father said:

The Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: โ€œWhen the night comes from here and the day departs from here, it is time for the fasting person to break his fast,โ€ meaning the east and the west,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 192
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 192

349

Da'if (Darussalam) [because of the weakness of โ€˜Abdul-ยญA'la athยญ-Tha'labi]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุณู’ุฑูŽุงุฆููŠู„ู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠููˆู†ูุณูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุนู’ู„ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽุงู‡ู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ู‡ูู„ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูู„ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุดูŽูˆู‘ูŽุงู„ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฃูŽูู’ุทูุฑููˆุง ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูุณู‘ู ูููŠู‡ู ู…ูŽุงุกูŒ ููŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุณูŽุญูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชููƒูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู„ูุฃูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ูŽูƒูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽููŽุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชูŽ ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุนูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู‘ููŠ ูˆูŽุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽุฉู ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุงุณูู…ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุนูŽู„ูŽ ู…ูุซู’ู„ูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ููŽุนูŽู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุฌูุจู‘ูŽุฉูŒ ุดูŽุงู…ููŠู‘ูŽุฉูŒ ุถูŽูŠู‘ูู‚ูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ูƒูู…ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ููŽุฃูŽุฏู’ุฎูŽู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุฏูŽู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุชูŽุญู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุฌูุจู‘ูŽุฉู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุบู’ุฑูุจูŽ.

It was narrated that โ€˜Abdur-Rahman bin Abi Laila said:

I was with โ€˜Umar and a man came to him and said:I have seen the new moon, the new moon of Shawwal. 'Umar said: O people, break the fast. Then he went to a vessel in which there was water and did wudooโ€™, and he wiped over his khuffain. A man said: By Allah, O. Ameer al-Mu'mineen, I only came to you to ask about this. Did you see any one else do this? He said: Yes, one who was better than me and the best of the ummah. I saw Abulยญ-Qasim ๏ทบ do the same as I have done, when he was wearing a Syrian jubbah with tight sleeves, he put his hand under the jubbah. Then 'Umar prayed Maghrib.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 193
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 193

350

[Sahih lighairihi; Qatadah had never heard from Sulaiman Al-ยญYashkuri, and Muslim (1950)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูŽุนููŠุฏูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุชูŽุงุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูุญูŽุฑู‘ูู…ู’ ุงู„ุถู‘ูŽุจู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุฐูุฑูŽู‡ู ูˆ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุบูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽุดู’ูƒูุฑููŠู‘ู.

It was narrated from Jabir bin 'Abdullah that 'Umar bin al-Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said:

The Prophet of Allah ๏ทบ did not prohibit lizard (meat), but he found it off-ยญputting.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 194
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 194

351

Da'if (Darussalam) [because of the weakness of 'Assim bin 'Ubaidullah)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฃู’ุฐูŽู†ูŽู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉู ููŽุฃูŽุฐูู†ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎููŠ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽู†ู’ุณูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุฏูุนูŽุงุฆููƒูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุจูŽุนู’ุฏู ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉู ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎููŠ ุฃูŽุดู’ุฑููƒู’ู†ูŽุง ูููŠ ุฏูุนูŽุงุฆููƒูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูุญูุจู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู„ููŠ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ู…ูŽุง ุทูŽู„ูŽุนูŽุชู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู ู„ูู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ูู‡ู ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎููŠ.

It was narrated from โ€˜Umar that he asked the Prophet ๏ทบ for permission to do 'Umrah and he gave him permission and said:

"O my brother, do not forget us in your supplication." And he said later in Madinah: "O my brother, include us in your supplication." สผUmar said: I would not like to have instead of that everything on which the sun rises, because of him saying: "O my brother.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 195
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 195

352

[Hasan lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽุงุฌูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู†ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽู„ู ูููŠู‡ู ุฃูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ููุฑูุบูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ูููŠ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ู…ูุจู’ุชูŽุฏูŽุฅู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ู…ูุจู’ุชูŽุฏูŽุนู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูููŠู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ููุฑูุบูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽู„ูŽุง ู†ูŽุชู‘ูŽูƒูู„ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุนู’ู…ูŽู„ู’ ูŠูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ููŽูƒูู„ู‘ูŒ ู…ููŠูŽุณู‘ูŽุฑูŒ ุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุนูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ููŽูŠูŽุนู’ู…ูŽู„ู ู„ูู„ุณู‘ูŽุนูŽุงุฏูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู‚ูŽุงุกู ููŽูŠูŽุนู’ู…ูŽู„ู ู„ูู„ุดู‘ูŽู‚ูŽุงุกู.

It was narrated from 'Umar that he said to the Prophet ๏ทบ:

What do you think about what we are striving for is it something already decided or something that is evolving now or something new? He said: โ€œIt is something already decided," "Umar said: Then why don't we rely on what is already decided? He said: "Strive, O son of al-Khattab, for everyone will be helped; whoever is one of the people of bliss will strive for that bliss and whoever is one of the people of doom will strive for that doom.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 196
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 196

353

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2462) and Muslim (1691)}
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุณู’ุนููˆุฏู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูˆู’ูู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ููŽุณูŽู…ูุนูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฃูŽู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูู†ูŽุงุณู‹ุง ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุจูŽุงู„ู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌู’ู…ู ูููŠ ูƒูุชูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู„ู’ุฏู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฑูŽุฌูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽู…ู’ู†ูŽุง ุจูŽุนู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงุฆูู„ููˆู†ูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ูŠูŽุชูŽูƒูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูุชูŽูƒูŽู„ู‘ูู…ููˆู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฒูŽุงุฏูŽ ูููŠ ูƒูุชูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ู„ูŽูŠู’ุณูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ู ู„ูŽุฃูŽุซู’ุจูŽุชู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ู†ูุฒู‘ูู„ูŽุชู’.

โ€˜Abdur-ยญRahman bin โ€˜Awf narrated that 'Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ addressed the people and he heard him say:

Some people say: what is this stoning? รญn the Book of Allah it mentions flogging.But the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ stoned [adulterers] and we stoned [them] after him. Were it not that some people would say that 'Umar added something to the Book of Allah that is not part of it, I would have written it the way it was revealed.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 197
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 197

354

[Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (692)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฎูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฑู ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูŽุจููŠุจู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ู†ูููŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูู…ู’ุทู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุชูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุฑู’ุถู‹ุง ูŠูู‚ูŽุงู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฏูŽูˆู’ู…ููŠู†ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุญูู…ู’ุตูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณู ุซูŽู…ูŽุงู†ููŠูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽุดูŽุฑูŽ ู…ููŠู„ู‹ุง ููŽุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุชูุตูŽู„ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุจูุฐููŠ ุงู„ู’ุญูู„ูŽูŠู’ููŽุฉู ูŠูุตูŽู„ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽูู’ุนูŽู„ู ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุนูŽู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ.

It was narrated from Ibn as-Simt

that he came to some land called Doomeen, eighteen miles from Homs, and prayed two rak'ahs. I [the narrator] said to him. Are you praying two rak'ahs? He said: I saw 'Umar bin al-Khattab in Dhulยญ-Hulaifah praying two rak'ahs and I asked him (about that). He said: I am only doing what I saw the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ do.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 198
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 198

355

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (878) and Muslim (845]]
ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุญู’ู…ูŽุฏ ุจู’ู† ุญูŽู†ู’ุจูŽู„ู ู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽู‡ู’ุฏููŠู‘ู : ู…ูŽุงู„ููƒูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุดูู‡ูŽุงุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽุฎู’ุทูุจู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูŽุฉู ุณูŽุงุนูŽุฉู ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ุงู†ู’ู‚ูŽู„ูŽุจู’ุชู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ุณู‘ููˆู‚ู ููŽุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุฏูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽู…ูŽุง ุฒูุฏู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู’ุชู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู’ุถู‹ุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุฃู’ู…ูุฑู ุจูุงู„ู’ุบูุณู’ู„ู.

It was narrated that Ibn โ€˜Umar said:

One of the Companions of the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ entered the mosque on a Friday, when 'Umar bin al Khattab ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ ยญ was addressing the people. 'Umar said: What time is this? He said: 'O Ameer al-Mu'mineen, I have just come from the marketplace. I heard the call and I did not do anything more than wudoo', 'Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said: Wudooโ€™ too! You know that the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ used to enjoin ghusl!
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 199
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 199

356

Sahih (Darussalam), al-Bukhari (3838)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽูŠู’ู…ููˆู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููˆู†ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ูŠููููŠุถููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูŽู…ู’ุนู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุชูุดู’ุฑูู‚ูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุซูŽุจููŠุฑู ููŽุฎูŽุงู„ูŽููŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽููŽุงุถูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุทู’ู„ูุนูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู.

It was narrated that 'Umar bin al-ยญKhattab said:

The mushrikeen used not to move on from Jam' (Muzdalifah) until the sun rose over (the mountain of) Thabeer, The Prophet ๏ทบ differed from them and moved on before the sun rose.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 200
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 200

357

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (1767)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฌู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽุฃูุฎู’ุฑูุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุตูŽุงุฑูŽู‰ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูŽุฒููŠุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฑูŽุจู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฏูŽุนูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ู‹ุง.

Jabir bin โ€˜Abdullah said:

Umar bin al-Khattab told me that he heard the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ say: โ€œI shall certainly expel the Jews and Christians from the Arabian Peninsula so that I will not leave anyone but Muslims."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 201
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 201

358

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (878) and Muslim (845}]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุงู„ูู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ู‚ูŽุงุฆูู…ูŒ ูŠูŽุฎู’ุทูุจู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูู…ูุนูŽุฉู ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู†ูŽุงุฏูŽุงู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูŽุฉู ุณูŽุงุนูŽุฉู ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุดูุบูู„ู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ู‚ูŽู„ูุจู’ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ููŠ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุฏูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽุฒูุฏู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃู’ุชู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูุถููˆุกูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู’ุถู‹ุง ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชูู…ู’ ูˆูŽูููŠ ู…ูŽูˆู’ุถูุนู ุขุฎูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุฃู’ู…ูุฑู ุจูุงู„ู’ุบูุณู’ู„ู.

It was narrated from Salim from his father

that whilst โ€˜Umar bin al Khattab was addressing the people on a Friday, one of the companions of the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ came in, 'Umar called out to

him: What time is this? He said: I was busy today and I did not go back to my family when I heard the call to prayer, so I did no more than doing wudooโ€™. สผUmar said: Just wudooสผ, when you know that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) used to enjoin ghus!?
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 202
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 202

359

Sahih Hadeeth, its isnad is Hasan, Muslim (114)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุดูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุงุณูู…ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนููƒู’ุฑูู…ูŽุฉู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุณูู…ูŽุงูƒูŒ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู†ูŽูููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฒูู…ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุฎูŽูŠู’ุจูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ู†ูŽููŽุฑูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ููู„ูŽุงู†ูŒ ุดูŽู‡ููŠุฏูŒ ููู„ูŽุงู†ูŒ ุดูŽู‡ููŠุฏูŒ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ููˆุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ููู„ูŽุงู†ูŒ ุดูŽู‡ููŠุฏูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูƒูŽู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชูู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ูููŠ ุจูุฑู’ุฏูŽุฉู ุบูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุนูŽุจูŽุงุกูŽุฉู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุงุฐู’ู‡ูŽุจู’ ููŽู†ูŽุงุฏู ูููŠ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููˆู†ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌู’ุชู ููŽู†ูŽุงุฏูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฃูŽู„ูŽุง ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููˆู†ูŽ.

Abdullah bin โ€˜Abbas said:

Umar bin al-Khattab told me: On the day of Khaibar, a group of the companions of the Prophet ๏ทบ came and said: So and so has been martyred. So and so has been martyred, until they came to a man and said, So and so has been martyred, but the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œNo, I saw him in the Fire because of a cloak or 'aba'ah that he stole from the war booty.โ€ Then the Messenger of Allah ๏ทบ said: โ€œO son of al-Khattab, go and call out to the people that no one will enter Paradise except the believers.โ€ So I went out and called to them, saying: "No one will enter Paradise except the believers.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 203
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 203

360

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (2643).
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ููุฑูŽุงุชู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุจูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏู ุงู„ุฏู‘ููŠู’ู„ููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุนูŽ ุจูู‡ูŽุง ู…ูŽุฑูŽุถูŒ ููŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูŠูŽู…ููˆุชููˆู†ูŽ ู…ูŽูˆู’ุชู‹ุง ุฐูŽุฑููŠุนู‹ุง ููŽุฌูŽู„ูŽุณู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุชู’ ุจูู‡ู ุฌูŽู†ูŽุงุฒูŽุฉูŒ ููŽุฃูุซู’ู†ููŠูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุตูŽุงุญูุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฌูŽุจูŽุชู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุฑู‘ูŽ ุจูุฃูุฎู’ุฑูŽู‰ ููŽุฃูุซู’ู†ููŠูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุตูŽุงุญูุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุจูŽุชู’ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู…ูุฑู‘ูŽ ุจูุงู„ุซู‘ูŽุงู„ูุซูŽุฉู ููŽุฃูุซู’ู†ููŠูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุตูŽุงุญูุจูู‡ูŽุง ุดูŽุฑู‘ูŒ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฌูŽุจูŽุชู’ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฌูŽุจูŽุชู’ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู…ูŽุง ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ู ุดูŽู‡ูุฏูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุฑู’ุจูŽุนูŽุฉูŒ ุจูุฎูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฎูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽุฉูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽุฉูŒ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุงุซู’ู†ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุงุซู’ู†ูŽุงู†ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ู†ูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุญูุฏู.

It was narrated that Abul-Aswad ad-ยญDeeli said:

When I came to Madinah, sickness was occurring in the city and they were dying quickly. I sat with 'Umar bin al Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) and a funeral passed by, Good things were said about (the deceased) and โ€˜Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said: It is due. Then another (funeral) passed by; good things were said about (the deceased) and he said: It is due. Then a third funeral passed by: bad things were said about the deceased and โ€˜Umar said: It is due. I said: What is due, O Ameer al Mu'mineen? He said: I said what the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "Any Muslim in whose favour four people testify, Allah will admit him to Paradise." We said: Or three? He said: โ€œOr three." We said: Or two? He said: "Or two.โ€ Then we did not ask him about one,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 204
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 204

361

[lts isnad is qawi]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽูŠู’ูˆูŽุฉู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ูŽ ู‡ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุชูŽู…ููŠู…ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽูŠู’ุดูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุชูŽุชูŽูˆูŽูƒู‘ูŽู„ููˆู†ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽู‚ู‘ูŽ ุชูŽูˆูŽูƒู‘ูู„ูู‡ู ู„ูŽุฑูŽุฒูŽู‚ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฑู’ุฒูู‚ู ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽ ุชูŽุบู’ุฏููˆ ุฎูู…ูŽุงุตู‹ุง ูˆูŽุชูŽุฑููˆุญู ุจูุทูŽุงู†ู‹ุง.

Abu Tameem alยญ-Jaishani said:

Umar bin al Khattab heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say: "If you were to put your trust in Allah as you should, you would be given provision like the birds: they go out hungry in the morning and come back with full bellies in the evening.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 205
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 205

362

(Da'if (Darussalam)because Hakeem bin Shareek al-Hudhali is unknown]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฃูŽูŠู‘ููˆุจูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูŽุทูŽุงุกู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏููŠู†ูŽุงุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูŽูƒููŠู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุดูŽุฑููŠูƒู ุงู„ู’ู‡ูุฐูŽู„ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽูŠู’ู…ููˆู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุถู’ุฑูŽู…ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูุฑูŽุดููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู‡ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูุฌูŽุงู„ูุณููˆุง ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุฏูŽุฑู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูููŽุงุชูุญููˆู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ.

It was narrated from Abu Hurairah from 'Umar bin al-Khattab that the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said:

โ€œDo not sit with the people who deny al-ยญqadar, or initiate any discussion with them." 'AbdurRahman said on one occasion: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) say.....
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 206
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 206

363

[Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (692)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุงุดูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุงุณูู…ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูุนู’ุจูŽุฉู ุนูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฎูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุงู„ู’ู‡ูŽู…ู’ุฏูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุญูŽุจููŠุจูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ูŠูุญูŽุฏู‘ูุซู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ู†ูููŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูู…ู’ุทู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฐููŠ ุงู„ู’ุญูู„ูŽูŠู’ููŽุฉู ููŽุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽูƒู’ุนูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุตู’ู†ูŽุนู ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ.

ft was narrated from Ibn as-Simt

that he went out with โ€˜Umar to Dhulยญ-Hulaifah and he prayed two rak'ahs. I [the narrator] asked hirm about that and he said: I am only doing what I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) do.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 207
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 207

364

Hasan (Darussalam) [ (Muslim (1763);
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู†ููˆุญู ู‚ูุฑูŽุงุฏูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุนููƒู’ุฑูู…ูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูู…ูŽุงูƒูŒ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู†ูŽูููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฒูู…ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุจูŽุฏู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุธูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจูู‡ู ูˆูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ู…ูุงุฆูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู†ูŽูŠู‘ูููŒ ูˆูŽู†ูŽุธูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููŠู†ูŽ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู„ู’ููŒ ูˆูŽุฒููŠูŽุงุฏูŽุฉูŒ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุจู’ู„ูŽุฉูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽุฏู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุฑูุฏูŽุงุคูู‡ู ูˆูŽุฅูุฒูŽุงุฑูู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏู’ุชูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุฌูุฒู’ ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏู’ุชูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุฅูู†ู’ ุชูู‡ู’ู„ููƒู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุนูุตูŽุงุจูŽุฉูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ู’ุฅูุณู’ู„ูŽุงู…ู ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุนู’ุจูŽุฏู’ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ุถู ุฃูŽุจูŽุฏู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู…ูŽุง ุฒูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุณู’ุชูŽุบููŠุซู ุฑูŽุจู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽูŠูŽุฏู’ุนููˆู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุณูŽู‚ูŽุทูŽ ุฑูุฏูŽุงุคูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽุงู‡ู ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐูŽ ุฑูุฏูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ููŽุฑูŽุฏู‘ูŽุงู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุชูŽุฒูŽู…ูŽู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ูˆูŽุฑูŽุงุฆูู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูƒูŽููŽุงูƒูŽ ู…ูู†ูŽุงุดูŽุฏูŽุชููƒูŽ ุฑูŽุจู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽูŠูู†ู’ุฌูุฒู ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏูŽูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ [[[{ ุฅูุฐู’ ุชูŽุณู’ุชูŽุบููŠุซููˆู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุจู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽุฌูŽุงุจูŽ ู„ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ู…ูู…ูุฏู‘ููƒูู…ู’ ุจูุฃูŽู„ู’ูู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู„ูŽุงุฆููƒูŽุฉู ู…ูุฑู’ุฏููููŠู†ูŽ }]]] ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูุฆูุฐู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุชูŽู‚ูŽูˆู’ุง ููŽู‡ูŽุฒูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููŠู†ูŽ ููŽู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุณูŽุจู’ุนููˆู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูุณูุฑูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุณูŽุจู’ุนููˆู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽุดูŽุงุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽุง ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุจูŽู†ููˆ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽู…ู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุนูŽุดููŠุฑูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฅูุฎู’ูˆูŽุงู†ู ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฃูŽุฑูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุฃู’ุฎูุฐูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏู’ูŠูŽุฉูŽ ููŽูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ู‚ููˆู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ูƒููู‘ูŽุงุฑู ูˆูŽุนูŽุณูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู‡ู’ุฏููŠูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ููˆู†ูŽ ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุถูุฏู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุชูŽุฑูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฑูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุง ุฑูŽุฃูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฃูŽุฑูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูู†ูŽู†ููŠ ู…ูู†ู’ ููู„ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุฑููŠุจู‹ุง ู„ูุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุถู’ุฑูุจูŽ ุนูู†ูู‚ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูู†ูŽ ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุนูŽู‚ููŠู„ู ููŽูŠูŽุถู’ุฑูุจูŽ ุนูู†ูู‚ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูู†ูŽ ุญูŽู…ู’ุฒูŽุฉูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ููู„ูŽุงู†ู ุฃูŽุฎููŠู‡ู ููŽูŠูŽุถู’ุฑูุจูŽ ุนูู†ูู‚ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูŠู’ุณูŽุชู’ ูููŠ ู‚ูู„ููˆุจูู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽูˆูŽุงุฏูŽุฉูŒ ู„ูู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููŠู†ูŽ ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุตูŽู†ูŽุงุฏููŠุฏูู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุฆูู…ู‘ูŽุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงุฏูŽุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽู‡ูŽูˆููŠูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽู‡ู’ูˆูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ููŽุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุบูŽุฏูŽูˆู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ู‚ูŽุงุนูุฏูŒ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽุจู’ูƒููŠูŽุงู†ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูุฑู’ู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุงุฐูŽุง ูŠูุจู’ูƒููŠูƒูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ูˆูŽุตูŽุงุญูุจูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ุชู ุจููƒูŽุงุกู‹ ุจูŽูƒูŽูŠู’ุชู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู’ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽุฌูุฏู’ ุจููƒูŽุงุกู‹ ุชูŽุจูŽุงูƒูŽูŠู’ุชู ู„ูุจููƒูŽุงุฆููƒูู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ุนูŽุฑูŽุถูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจููƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกู ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูุฑูุถูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุนูŽุฐูŽุงุจููƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽุฏู’ู†ูŽู‰ ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽุฉู ู„ูุดูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุฑููŠุจูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ [[[{ ู…ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู„ูู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุณู’ุฑูŽู‰ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูุซู’ุฎูู†ูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ุถู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ูู‡ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ูƒูุชูŽุงุจูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽุจูŽู‚ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ูŽุณู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ูููŠู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ุชูู…ู’ }]]] ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูุญูู„ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ุบูŽู†ูŽุงุฆูู…ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุฃูุญูุฏู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุงู…ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูู‚ู’ุจูู„ู ุนููˆู‚ูุจููˆุง ุจูู…ูŽุง ุตูŽู†ูŽุนููˆุง ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุจูŽุฏู’ุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุฐูู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุณูŽุจู’ุนููˆู†ูŽ ูˆูŽููŽุฑู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูุณูุฑูŽุชู’ ุฑูŽุจูŽุงุนููŠูŽุชูู‡ู ูˆูŽู‡ูุดูู…ูŽุชู’ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽูŠู’ุถูŽุฉู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณูู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽู…ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ูˆูŽุฌู’ู‡ูู‡ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ [[[{ ุฃูŽูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽุตูŽุงุจูŽุชู’ูƒูู…ู’ ู…ูุตููŠุจูŽุฉูŒ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽุตูŽุจู’ุชูู…ู’ ู…ูุซู’ู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง }]]] ุงู„ู’ุขูŠูŽุฉูŽ ุจูุฃูŽุฎู’ุฐููƒูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกูŽ.

Ibn 'Abbas narrated that 'Umar bin al-Khattab said:

On the day of Badr, the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) looked at his companions and they were three hundred and some, then he looked at the mushrikeen and saw that they were one thousand or more. The Prophet of Allah(๏ทบ) turned to face the qiblah, then he stretched forth his hands, wearing his upper and lower garment, and he said: โ€œO Allah, where is Your promise to me? O Allah, accomplish for me what You have promised me! O Allah, if this small band of Muslims is destroyed, You will never be worshipped on earth.โ€ He kept beseeching his Lord, calling out to Him, until his upper garment fell from his shoulders. Abu Bakr came to him, picked up his upper garment and put it on him. Then he embraced him from behind and said: O Prophet of Allah, this prayer of yours to your Lord will suffice, for He will accomplish for you what He has promised to you. Then Allah revealed the words: "(Remember) when you sought help of your Lord and He answered you (saying): โ€˜I will help you with a thousand of the angels each behind the other (following one another) in succession" [al Anfal 8:9). On that day when the armies met (in battle), Allah, may He be glorified and exalted, defeated the mushrikeen; seventy of their men were killed and seventy were taken captive. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) consulted Abu Bakr, 'Ali and 'Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ู… (concerning the prisoners). Abu Bakr said: O Prophet of Allah, they are our cousins, kinsmen and brothers, I think that you should accept a ransom for them, which will strengthen us against the kuffar, and perhaps Allah will guide them to Islam and they will become a support to us. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œWhat do you think, O son of al-Khattab?" I said: No, by Allah. I do not think as Abu Bakr thinks. I think that you should hand. So and so ยญ a relative of สผUmar's- ยญ over

to me so that I may strike his neck. You should hand โ€˜Aqeel over to โ€˜Ali so that he may strike his neck, and you should hand over So and so to Hamzah (his brother) so that he may strike his neck, so that Allah will know that we have no mercy in our hearts towards the mushrikeen; these are

their prominent figures and leaders. But the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) inclined towards the view of Abu Bakr, and he did not incline towards what I said, and accepted ransoms from them. The next day, I came to the Prophet (๏ทบ) and found him with Abu Bakr, and they were both weeping I said: O Messenger of Allah , tell me why you and your companion are weeping. If I find it is a cause for weeping, I will weep too, and is it is not, then I will make myself weep with you. The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: "I am weeping because of what your companions suggested about accepting a ransom for the prisoners. I have been shown your punishment as close as this tree" ยญ a tree that was close to the Prophet of Allah (๏ทบ) Then Allah revealed the words:"It is not for a Prophet that he should have prisoners of war (and free them with ransom) until he had made a great slaughter (among his enemies) in the land. You desire the good of this world (i.e. the money of ransom for freeing the captives), but Allah desires (for you) the Hereafter. And Allah is Almighty, All Wise. Were it not a previous ordainment from Allah, a severe torment would have touched you for what you took "[al Anfal 8:67ยญ-68] ยญ i.e., referring to the ransom. Then booty was permitted to them, and when the day of Uhud came the following year, they were punished for what they had done of taking the

ransom on the day of Badr. Seventy of them were killed and the Companions of the Prophet deserted him, his front tooth was broken and the helmet on his head was broken, and blood flowed down his face, and Allah revealed the words: โ€œWhen a single disaster smites you, although you smote (your enemies) with one twice as great, you say: 'From where does this come to us?"Say (to them), โ€˜It is from yourselves (because of your evil deeds).' And Allah has power over all thingsโ€ [Al 'Imran 3:165]
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 208
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 208

365

Sahih (Darussalam) [ al-Bukhari (4177)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู†ููˆุญู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุงู„ููƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽู†ูŽุณู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุณูŽููŽุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุณูŽุฃูŽู„ู’ุชูู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุชู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽุฑูุฏู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูู†ูŽูู’ุณููŠ ุซูŽูƒูู„ูŽุชู’ูƒูŽ ุฃูู…ู‘ููƒูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ู†ูŽุฒูŽุฑู’ุชูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุชู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽุฑูุฏู‘ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ูƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฑูŽูƒูุจู’ุชู ุฑูŽุงุญูู„ูŽุชููŠ ููŽุชูŽู‚ูŽุฏู‘ูŽู…ู’ุชู ู…ูŽุฎูŽุงููŽุฉูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽ ูููŠู‘ูŽ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุจูู…ูู†ูŽุงุฏู ูŠูู†ูŽุงุฏููŠ ูŠูŽุง ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฃูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุฑูŽุฌูŽุนู’ุชู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุธูู†ู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽ ูููŠู‘ูŽ ุดูŽูŠู’ุกูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽุชู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุงุฑูุญูŽุฉูŽ ุณููˆุฑูŽุฉูŒ ู‡ููŠูŽ ุฃูŽุญูŽุจู‘ู ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูู†ู’ูŠูŽุง ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ูููŠู‡ูŽุง [[[{ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽุง ููŽุชูŽุญู’ู†ูŽุง ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุชู’ุญู‹ุง ู…ูุจููŠู†ู‹ุง ู„ููŠูŽุบู’ููุฑูŽ ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุชูŽู‚ูŽุฏู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฐูŽู†ู’ุจููƒูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ุชูŽุฃูŽุฎู‘ูŽุฑูŽ }]]].

It was narrated that 'Umar bin alยญ-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ ยญ) said:

We were with the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) on a journey, and I asked him about something three times but he did not answer me. I said to myself, May

your mother be bereft of you. O son of al-Khattab, you spoke to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) three times and he did not answer you. So I got on my mount and went on ahead, fearing that something had been revealed concerning me. Then I heard someone calling out: O 'Umar! Where is โ€˜Umar? I went back, thinking that something had been revealed concerning me, and the Prophet (๏ทบ) said: "Yesterday a soorah was revealed to me that is dearer to me than this world and everything in it: โ€˜Verily, We have given you (O Muhammad ๏ทบ) a manifest victory. That Atlah may forgive you your sins of the past and the future' (alยญ-Fath 48:1โ€“2].
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 209
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 209

366

[Hasan because of corroborating evidence
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุถู’ุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุนููˆุฏููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูŽูƒููŠู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฌูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ููˆุณูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุทูŽู„ู’ุญูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูˆู’ุชูŽูƒููŠู‘ูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูุชููŠูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุจูุทูŽุนูŽุงู…ู ููŽุฏูŽุนูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุตูŽุงุฆูู…ูŒ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽูŠู‘ู ุงู„ุตู‘ููŠูŽุงู…ู ุชูŽุตููˆู…ู ู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ูƒูŽุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠูŽุฉู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ู‚ูุตูŽ ู„ูŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซู’ุชููƒูู…ู’ ุจูุญูŽุฏููŠุซู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุญููŠู†ูŽ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ุฑูŽุงุจููŠู‘ู ุจูุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ู†ูŽุจู ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฑู’ุณูู„ููˆุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฌูŽุงุกูŽ ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุดูŽุงู‡ูุฏูŒ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุฌูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ุฑูŽุงุจููŠู‘ู ุจูุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ู†ูŽุจู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุจูู‡ูŽุง ุฏูŽู…ู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู„ููˆู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุตูŽุงุฆูู…ูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽูŠู‘ู ุงู„ุตู‘ููŠูŽุงู…ู ุชูŽุตููˆู…ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู‘ูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู‡ู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุขุฎูุฑูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู’ ูƒูู†ู’ุชูŽ ุตูŽุงุฆูู…ู‹ุง ููŽุตูู…ู’ ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽ ุนูŽุดู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ุจูŽุนูŽ ุนูŽุดู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฎูŽู…ู’ุณูŽ ุนูŽุดู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ.

It was narrated that Ibn al-Hawtakiyyah said:

Some food was brought to 'Umar bin al-Khattab and he called a man to join him, but he said, I am fasting. ['Umar] said: What fast are you observing? Were it not for fear of adding or subtracting something, I would have narrated to you a hadeeth, from the Prophet (๏ทบ), when the Bedouin brought him a rabbit; rather send for 'Ammar. When 'Ammar came, he said: Were you there on the day when the Bedouin brought the rabbit to the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ)? ('Ammar) said: Yes. ('Umar] said: I saw blood on it, but he (the Prophet (๏ทบ) said: "Eat it." (The Bedouin) said: I am fasting. (The Prophet (๏ทบ) said: "What fast are you observing?โ€ He said: The beginning and end of the month. He said: โ€œIf you want to fast, then fast the thirteenth, fourteenth and fifteenth (of the month)."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 210
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 210

367

[Da'if (Darussalam)because of the weakness of Mujalid bin Sa'eed]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุถู’ุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽู‚ููŠู„ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุฌูŽุงู„ูุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูŽุณู’ุฑููˆู‚ู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฌู’ุฏูŽุนู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‚ููŠุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ููŠ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู…ูŽุณู’ุฑููˆู‚ู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฌู’ุฏูŽุนู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฌู’ุฏูŽุนู ุดูŽูŠู’ุทูŽุงู†ูŒ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูŽุณู’ุฑููˆู‚ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑูŒ ููŽุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชูู‡ู ูููŠ ุงู„ุฏู‘ููŠูˆูŽุงู†ู ู…ูŽูƒู’ุชููˆุจู‹ุง ู…ูŽุณู’ุฑููˆู‚ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู…ูŽุง ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูŽูƒูŽุฐูŽุง ุณูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู.

It was narrated that Masrooq bin al-ยญAjda' said:

I met 'Umar bin alยญ-Khattab and he said: Who are you? I said: Masrooq bin alยญ-Ajda'. 'Umar said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) saying, "Al-

Ajda' is a devil [i.e. the word Al-ยญAjda' has a bad meaning]; rather you are Masrooq bin โ€˜Abdur-Rahman. 'Amir said: I saw his name written in the Deewan; Masrooq bin โ€˜Abdur-ยญRahman. I said: What is this? He said. This is what โ€˜Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ called me.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 211
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 211

368

[Da'of (Darussalam) [; because of the weakness of 'Abdullah bin Lahee'ah]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนููŠุณูŽู‰ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู„ูŽู‡ููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุนู’ููŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูุญูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ู‡ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุฑูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฒู’ู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุญูุฑู‘ูŽุฉู ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุจูุฅูุฐู’ู†ูู‡ูŽุง.

It was narrated from สผUmar bin al-Khattab that

the Prophet (๏ทบ) forbade 'azl (coitus interruptus) with a free woman, except with her permission.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 212
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 212

369

[Sahih hadeeth; this isnad is Hasan, al-Bukhari (2334)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู„ููƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู’ุฑููˆ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽุงู…ูŒ ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ู„ูŽุฆูู†ู’ ุนูุดู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุงู…ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูู‚ู’ุจูู„ู ู„ูŽุง ูŠููู’ุชูŽุญู ู„ูู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุฑู’ูŠูŽุฉูŒ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุณูŽู…ู’ุชูู‡ูŽุง ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ูƒูŽู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุณูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฎูŽูŠู’ุจูŽุฑูŽ.

It was narrated from Zaid bin Aslam that his father said: I heard โ€˜Umar say:

If I live until next year, no city will be conquered but I shall divide it among them (the troops) as the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) divided Khaibar.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 213
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 213

370

Sahih lighairihi and its isnad is da'eef al-Bukhari (6647) Muslim (1646)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุณู’ุฑูŽุงุฆููŠู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูู…ูŽุงูƒู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนููƒู’ุฑูู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูููŠ ุบูŽุฒูŽุงุฉู ููŽุญูŽู„ูŽูู’ุชู ู„ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููŠ ููŽู‡ูŽุชูŽููŽ ุจููŠ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฎูŽู„ู’ูููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุญู’ู„ููููˆุง ุจูุขุจูŽุงุฆููƒูู…ู’ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ.

It was narrated from Ibn 'Abbas that 'Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ said:

I was with the Prophet (๏ทบ) on a campaign, and I swore (an oath), No, by my father! A man called out from behind me: โ€œDo not swear by your fathers.โ€ And I saw that it was the Prophet (๏ทบ).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 214
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 214

371

Sahih (Darussalam) [ Muslim (1767)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฃูŽุญู’ู…ูŽุฏูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุฆูู†ู’ ุนูุดู’ุชู ุฅูู†ู’ ุดูŽุงุกูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุฃูุฎู’ุฑูุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุตูŽุงุฑูŽู‰ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูŽุฒููŠุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฑูŽุจู.

It was narrated that 'Umar said:

If I live, in sha Allah, I shall certainly expel the Jews and Christians from the Arabian Peninsula.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 215
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 215

372

[Sahih lighairihi
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุดูŽุฑููŠูƒูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู…ู’ุณูŽุญู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฎููู‘ูŽูŠู’ู†ู.

It was narrated that 'Umar said:

I saw the Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) wiping over his leather slippers (when doing wudooโ€™).
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 216
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 216

373

Sahih hadeeth.
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฏูŽุงูˆูุฏูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽุงู…ูŒ ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุญู’ูˆูŽุตู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูู…ูŽุงูƒู ุจู’ู†ู ุญูŽุฑู’ุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุนู’ุฑููˆุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽุฎู’ุทูุจู ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุจูŽู†ูŽู‰ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏูŽ ูˆูŽู†ูŽุญู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูู‡ูŽุงุฌูุฑููˆู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู†ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ุงุดู’ุชูŽุฏู‘ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุญูŽุงู…ู ููŽู„ู’ูŠูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู’ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฌูู„ู ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู…ู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุธูŽู‡ู’ุฑู ุฃูŽุฎููŠู‡ู ูˆูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ูŠูุตูŽู„ู‘ููˆู†ูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽุฑููŠู‚ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุตูŽู„ู‘ููˆุง ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุณู’ุฌูุฏู.

It was narrated that Sayyar bin al-Ma'roor said: I heard 'Umar giving a khutbah, and he said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) built this mosque and we, the Muhajireen and Ansar, were with him. If it gets too crowded, then let one of you prostrate on his brother's back. And he saw people (on one occasion) praying in the street and said: Pray in the mosque,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 217
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 217

374

[Sahih hadeeth]
ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุญู’ูŠูŽู‰ ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนููŠุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฒูู‡ูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุญูŽุงุฑูุซูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูุถูŽุฑู‘ูุจู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽุงู‡ู ุฃูŽุดู’ุฑูŽุงูู ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุงู…ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ููˆุง ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽุตูŽุจู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูู†ูŽุง ุฑูŽู‚ููŠู‚ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฏูŽูˆูŽุงุจู‘ูŽ ููŽุฎูุฐู’ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู…ู’ูˆูŽุงู„ูู†ูŽุง ุตูŽุฏูŽู‚ูŽุฉู‹ ุชูุทูŽู‡ู‘ูุฑูู†ูŽุง ุจูู‡ูŽุง ูˆูŽุชูŽูƒููˆู†ู ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ุฒูŽูƒูŽุงุฉู‹ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุดูŽูŠู’ุกูŒ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽูู’ุนูŽู„ู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽุฐูŽุงู†ู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ููŠ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู’ ุงู†ู’ุชูŽุธูุฑููˆุง ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููŠู†ูŽ.

It was narrated from Harithah bin Mudarrib that he did Hajj with โ€˜Umar bin al Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡).

The nobles of Syria came to him ['Umar) and said: O Ameer al-Mu'mineen, we have acquired slaves and mounts, so take charity from our wealth in order to purify us thereby, and it will be zakah for us. He said: This is something that the two who came before me did not do; I shall wait until I ask the Muslims.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 218
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 218

375

[Sahih (Darussalam) [ according to the conditions of Muslim]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฑูŽูˆู’ุญูŒ ูˆูŽู…ูุคูŽู…ู‘ูŽู„ูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุง ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุงู„ุซู‘ูŽูˆู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฌูŽุงุจูุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽุฆูู†ู’ ุนูุดู’ุชู ู„ูŽุฃูุฎู’ุฑูุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽู‡ููˆุฏูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุตูŽุงุฑูŽู‰ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูŽุฒููŠุฑูŽุฉู ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุฑูŽุจู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽุชู’ุฑููƒูŽ ูููŠู‡ูŽุง ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ู‹ุง.

It was narrated from Jabir bin 'Abdullah that 'Umar bin al Khattab said:

The Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ) said: โ€œIf I live, I shall certainly expel the Jews and Christians from the Arabian Peninsula, until I leave only Muslims there.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 219
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 219

376

Sahih (Darussalam)
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุชู‘ูŽุงุจู ุจู’ู†ู ุฒููŠูŽุงุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุจูŽุงุฑูŽูƒู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠููˆู†ูุณู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุณู‘ูŽุงุฆูุจู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ูˆูŽุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูุชู’ุจูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุจูŽู„ูŽุบูŽ ุจูู‡ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ููŽุงุชูŽู‡ู ุดูŽูŠู’ุกูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ูˆูุฑู’ุฏูู‡ู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฌูุฒู’ุฆูู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ููŽู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุตูŽู„ูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ู’ููŽุฌู’ุฑู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ุธู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑู ููŽูƒูŽุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ู„ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุชูู‡ู.

lt was narrated from 'Umar bin al-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) and สปAbdullah said:

My father attributed it to the Prophet (๏ทบ) - that he said: "Whoever misses any part of his regular portion of Qur'an or prayer at night, and recites it between Fajr and Zuhr, it will be as if he recited it that night.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 220
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 220

377

Aย Sahihย hadeethย itsย isnadย isย Hasanอพย Muslimย (1763).]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู†ููˆุญู ู‚ูุฑูŽุงุฏูŒ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนููƒู’ุฑูู…ูŽุฉู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽู…ู‘ูŽุงุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุณูู…ูŽุงูƒูŒ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽู†ูŽูููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุฒูู…ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุจูŽุฏู’ุฑู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุธูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจูู‡ู ูˆูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซู ู…ูุงุฆูŽุฉู ูˆูŽู†ูŽูŠู‘ูููŒ ูˆูŽู†ูŽุธูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููŠู†ูŽ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู„ู’ููŒ ูˆูŽุฒููŠูŽุงุฏูŽุฉูŒ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุจู’ู„ูŽุฉูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู…ูŽุฏู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽุฏูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ุฑูุฏูŽุงุคูู‡ู ูˆูŽุฅูุฒูŽุงุฑูู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏู’ุชูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุฌูุฒู’ ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏู’ุชูŽู†ููŠ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฅูู†ู’ ุชูู‡ู’ู„ููƒู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุนูุตูŽุงุจูŽุฉูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ู’ุฅูุณู’ู„ูŽุงู…ู ููŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุนู’ุจูŽุฏู’ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ุถู ุฃูŽุจูŽุฏู‹ุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽู…ูŽุง ุฒูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุณู’ุชูŽุบููŠุซู ุฑูŽุจู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽูŠูŽุฏู’ุนููˆู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุณูŽู‚ูŽุทูŽ ุฑูุฏูŽุงุคูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽุงู‡ู ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ููŽุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐูŽ ุฑูุฏูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ููŽุฑูŽุฏู‘ูŽุงู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุชูŽุฒูŽู…ูŽู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ูˆูŽุฑูŽุงุฆูู‡ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูƒูŽููŽุงูƒูŽ ู…ูู†ูŽุงุดูŽุฏูŽุชููƒูŽ ุฑูŽุจู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุณูŽูŠูู†ู’ุฌูุฒู ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูŽุง ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏูŽูƒูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ [[[{ ุฅูุฐู’ ุชูŽุณู’ุชูŽุบููŠุซููˆู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุจู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽุฌูŽุงุจูŽ ู„ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ู…ูู…ูุฏู‘ููƒูู…ู’ ุจูุฃูŽู„ู’ูู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽู„ูŽุงุฆููƒูŽุฉู ู…ูุฑู’ุฏููููŠู†ูŽ }]]] ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูุฆูุฐู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุชูŽู‚ูŽูˆู’ุง ููŽู‡ูŽุฒูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููŠู†ูŽ ููŽู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุณูŽุจู’ุนููˆู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูุณูุฑูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุณูŽุจู’ุนููˆู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽุดูŽุงุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽุจูŽุง ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูŠูŽุง ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุจูŽู†ููˆ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽู…ู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุนูŽุดููŠุฑูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุฅูุฎู’ูˆูŽุงู†ู ููŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฑูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูŽุฃู’ุฎูุฐูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ู†ูŽุง ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ู‚ููˆู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ูƒููู‘ูŽุงุฑู ูˆูŽุนูŽุณูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽู‡ู’ุฏููŠูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ููˆู†ูŽ ู„ูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุถูุฏู‹ุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ุชูŽุฑูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฑูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุง ุฑูŽุฃูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูˆูŽู„ูŽูƒูู†ู‘ููŠ ุฃูŽุฑูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูู†ูŽู†ููŠ ู…ูู†ู’ ููู„ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุฑููŠุจู ู„ูุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุถู’ุฑูุจูŽ ุนูู†ูู‚ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูู†ูŽ ุนูŽู„ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุนูŽู‚ููŠู„ู ููŽูŠูŽุถู’ุฑูุจูŽ ุนูู†ูู‚ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูู…ูŽูƒู‘ูู†ูŽ ุญูŽู…ู’ุฒูŽุฉูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ููู„ูŽุงู†ู ุฃูŽุฎููŠู‡ู ููŽูŠูŽุถู’ุฑูุจูŽ ุนูู†ูู‚ูŽู‡ู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽูŠู’ุณูŽ ูููŠ ู‚ูู„ููˆุจูู†ูŽุง ู‡ูŽูˆูŽุงุฏูŽุฉูŒ ู„ูู„ู’ู…ูุดู’ุฑููƒููŠู†ูŽ ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุตูŽู†ูŽุงุฏููŠุฏูู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุฆูู…ู‘ูŽุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงุฏูŽุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽู‡ูŽูˆููŠูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽู‡ู’ูˆูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ููŽุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุบูŽุฏู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุบูŽุฏูŽูˆู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ู‚ูŽุงุนูุฏูŒ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุจููˆ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ูˆูŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ูŠูŽุจู’ูƒููŠูŽุงู†ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูุฑู’ู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุงุฐูŽุง ูŠูุจู’ูƒููŠูƒูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ูˆูŽุตูŽุงุญูุจูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู’ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ุชู ุจููƒูŽุงุกู‹ ุจูŽูƒูŽูŠู’ุชู ูˆูŽุฅูู†ู’ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽุฌูุฏู’ ุจููƒูŽุงุกู‹ ุชูŽุจูŽุงูƒูŽูŠู’ุชู ู„ูุจููƒูŽุงุฆููƒูู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู‘ูŽุฐููŠ ุนูŽุฑูŽุถูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจููƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกู ูˆูŽู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูุฑูุถูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุนูŽุฐูŽุงุจููƒูู…ู’ ุฃูŽุฏู’ู†ูŽู‰ ู…ูู†ู’ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽุฉู ู„ูุดูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุฑููŠุจูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ [[[{ ู…ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู„ูู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽูƒููˆู†ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุณู’ุฑูŽู‰ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ูŠูุซู’ุฎูู†ูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุฑู’ุถู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ูู‡ู ู„ูŽู…ูŽุณู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ูููŠู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐู’ุชูู…ู’ }]]] ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูุญูู„ู‘ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ุบูŽู†ูŽุงุฆูู…ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ุฃูุญูุฏู ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุงู…ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูู‚ู’ุจูู„ู ุนููˆู‚ูุจููˆุง ุจูู…ูŽุง ุตูŽู†ูŽุนููˆุง ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุจูŽุฏู’ุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุฐูู‡ูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽู‚ูุชูู„ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุณูŽุจู’ุนููˆู†ูŽ ูˆูŽููŽุฑู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุตู’ุญูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูุณูุฑูŽุชู’ ุฑูŽุจูŽุงุนููŠูŽุชูู‡ู ูˆูŽู‡ูุดูู…ูŽุชู’ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽูŠู’ุถูŽุฉู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณูู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ุฏู‘ูŽู…ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ูˆูŽุฌู’ู‡ูู‡ู ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู [[[{ ุฃูŽูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽุตูŽุงุจูŽุชู’ูƒูู…ู’ ู…ูุตููŠุจูŽุฉูŒ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽุตูŽุจู’ุชูู…ู’ ู…ูุซู’ู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู„ูู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ูƒูู„ู‘ู ุดูŽูŠู’ุกู ู‚ูŽุฏููŠุฑูŒ }]]] ุจูุฃูŽุฎู’ุฐููƒูู…ู’ ุงู„ู’ููุฏูŽุงุกูŽ.

lbnย 'Abbasย narratedย thatย 'Umarย binย al-ยญKhattabย said:

Onย theย dayย ofย Badr,ย theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ) lookedย atย hisย companionsย andย theyย wereย threeย hundredย andย some,ย thenย heย lookedย atย theย mushrikeenย andย saw thatย theyย wereย oneย thousandย or more. Theย Prophet of Allahย (๏ทบ) turnedย toย faceย theย qiblah, thenย he stretchedย forthย hisย hands, wearingย hisย upper andย lower garment, andย heย said: "O Allah, whereย is Yourย promiseย toย me?ย Oย Allah, accomplishย for meย what Youย haveย promisedย me! O Allah, if this smallย bandย ofย Muslimsย isย destroyed, Youย will never beย worshippedย onย earth.โ€ย Heย kept beseeching hisย Lord,ย callingย outย toย Him, until hisย upper garment fell from hisย shoulders, Abuย Bakr cameย to

him,ย pickedย upย hisย upperย garment andย put it backย onย him. Thenย heย embracedย him from behindย and said:ย Oย Prophetย ofย Allah,ย thisย prayer of yoursย toย your Lordย will suffice, for Heย will accomplishย for youย whatย Heย hasย promisedย toย you. Thenย Allahย revealedย theย words: "(Remember) whenย youย sought

helpย ofย yourย Lordย andย Heย answeredย youย (saying): โ€˜I will helpย youย withย aย thousandย of theย angels eachย behindย theย otherย (followingย oneย another) inย succession"ย (alยญ-Anfal 8:9). Onย that dayย whenย the armiesย metย (inย battle),ย Allah, mayย Heย beย glorifiedย andย exalted, causedย theย mushrikeenย toย be

defeated,ย seventyย ofย their menย wereย killedย andย seventyย wereย takenย captive. Theย Messenger of Allah (๏ทบ)ย consultedย Abuย Bakr,ย โ€˜Ali andย สผUmar (concerningย theย prisoners). Abuย Bakr said: O Prophet of Allah,ย theyย areย ourย cousins, kinsmenย andย brothers. I thinkย that youย should acceptย aย ransomย forย them, whichย will strengthenย usย against theย kuffar, andย perhapsย Allahย will guideย themย toย Islamย andย theyย will becomeย aย support toย us. Theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) said: โ€œwhat doย youย think,ย Oย sonย ofย al-Khattab?"ย I said: No, byย Allah. I doย not thinkย asย Abuย Bakr thinks. I think

thatย youย shouldย handย Soย andย soย ยญ- aย relativeย of โ€˜Umar'sย ยญ toย meย soย that I mayย strikeย hisย neck, You shouldย handย โ€˜Aqeelย overย toย โ€˜Ali soย that heย mayย strikeย hisย neck, andย youย shouldย handย over Soย and soย toย Hamzahย (hisย brother) soย that heย mayย strikeย hisย neck, soย that Allahย will know that weย haveย no mercyย inย ourย heartsย towardsย theย mushrikeenอพ theseย areย their prominent figuresย andย leaders.But theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ) inclinedย towardsย theย view of Abuย Bakr, andย heย didย not inclineย towards whatย Iย said,ย andย acceptedย ransomsย from them. Theย next day. I cameย toย theย Prophet (๏ทบ) andย found himย withย Abuย Bakr,ย andย theyย wereย bothย weeping. I said: ร– Messenger of Allah, tell meย whyย youย and

yourย companionย areย weeping. If I findย it isย aย causeย for weeping. I will weepย too, andย if it isย not, then Iย willย makeย myselfย weepย withย you. Theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) said: "I am weepingย becauseย of what yourย companionsย suggestedย about acceptingย aย ransom for theย prisoners. I haveย beenย shownย your

punishmentย asย closeย asย thisย tree"ย ยญ aย treeย that wasย closeย toย theย Prophet of Allahย (๏ทบ). Thenย Allahย revealedย theย words: โ€œIt isย not for aย Prophet that heย shouldย haveย prisonersย of war (and freeย themย withย ransom)ย until heย hadย madeย aย great slaughter (amongย hisย enemies) inย theย land. You desireย theย goodย ofย thisย worldย (i.e. theย moneyย of ransom for freeingย theย captives), but Allahย desires (forย you)ย theย Hereafter,ย Andย Allahย isย All-ยญMighty, All-Wise. Wereย it not aย previousย ordainment from Allah,ย aย severeย tormentย wouldย haveย touchedย youย for what youย took."ย [alยญ-Anfal 8.67-ยญ68] ยญ i.e.,

referringย toย theย ransom,ย Thenย bootyย wasย permittedย toย them, andย whenย theย dayย of Uhudย cameย the followingย year,ย theyย wereย punishedย for what theyย hadย doneย of takingย theย ransom onย theย dayย of Badr,ย Seventyย ofย themย wereย killedย andย theย Companionsย of theย Prophet desertedย himอพ hisย front

toothย wasย brokenย andย the helmet onย hisย headย wasย broken, andย bloodย flowedย downย hisย face, and Allahย revealedย theย words: โ€œWhenย aย singleย disaster smitesย you, althoughย youย smoteย (your enemies) withย oneย twiceย asย great,ย youย say: 'From whereย doesย thisย comeย toย us?"ย Sayย (toย them), โ€˜It isย from

yourselvesย (becauseย ofย your evil deeds).'ย Andย Allahย hasย power over all things"ย (Al โ€˜Imranย 3:165|]
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 221
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 221

378

[Itsย isnadย isย Sahih, alยญ-Bukhari (89) andย Muslim (1479)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุซูŽูˆู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูŽุฒูŽู„ู’ ุญูŽุฑููŠุตู‹ุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฑู’ุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงุฌู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽุชูŽูŠู’ู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ [[[{ ุฅูู†ู’ ุชูŽุชููˆุจูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุตูŽุบูŽุชู’ ู‚ูู„ููˆุจููƒูู…ูŽุง }]]] ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุญูŽุฌู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุญูŽุฌูŽุฌู’ุชู ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ุจูุจูŽุนู’ุถู ุงู„ุทู‘ูŽุฑููŠู‚ู ุนูŽุฏูŽู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุนูŽุฏูŽู„ู’ุชู ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู ุจูุงู„ู’ุฅูุฏูŽุงูˆูŽุฉู ููŽุชูŽุจูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฒูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุชูŽุงู†ููŠ ููŽุณูŽูƒูŽุจู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽู…ููŠุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููŠู†ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฑู’ุฃูŽุชูŽุงู†ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงุฌู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽุชูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุชูŽุนูŽุงู„ูŽู‰ [[[{ ุฅูู†ู’ ุชูŽุชููˆุจูŽุง ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุตูŽุบูŽุชู’ ู‚ูู„ููˆุจููƒูู…ูŽุง }]]] ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุงุนูŽุฌูŽุจู‹ุง ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู‘ูŽุงุณู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ูƒูŽุฑูู‡ูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุณูŽุฃูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽู…ู’ ูŠูŽูƒู’ุชูู…ู’ู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‡ููŠูŽ ุญูŽูู’ุตูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุนูŽุงุฆูุดูŽุฉู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุฎูŽุฐูŽ ูŠูŽุณููˆู‚ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏููŠุซูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ุดูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุดู ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ู†ูŽุบู’ู„ูุจู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุณูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฏูู…ู’ู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ุชูŽุบู’ู„ูุจูู‡ูู…ู’ ู†ูุณูŽุงุคูู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽุทูŽููู‚ูŽ ู†ูุณูŽุงุคูู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุชูŽุนูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู†ูุณูŽุงุฆูู‡ูู…ู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ุฒูู„ููŠ ูููŠ ุจูŽู†ููŠ ุฃูู…ูŽูŠู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฒูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุจูุงู„ู’ุนูŽูˆูŽุงู„ููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุชูŽุบูŽุถู‘ูŽุจู’ุชู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุชููŠ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููŠูŽ ุชูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนูู†ููŠ ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ูƒูŽุฑู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนูŽู†ููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ู…ูŽุง ุชูู†ู’ูƒูุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนูŽูƒูŽ ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงุฌูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽูŠูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนู’ู†ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูŽู‡ู’ุฌูุฑูู‡ู ุฅูุญู’ุฏูŽุงู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ููŽุงู†ู’ุทูŽู„ูŽู‚ู’ุชู ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุญูŽูู’ุตูŽุฉูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุชูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนููŠู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽุชูŽู‡ู’ุฌูุฑูู‡ู ุฅูุญู’ุฏูŽุงูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฎูŽุงุจูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ููŽุนูŽู„ูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฎูŽุณูุฑูŽ ุฃูŽููŽุชูŽุฃู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุฅูุญู’ุฏูŽุงูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุบู’ุถูŽุจูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ู„ูุบูŽุถูŽุจู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููŠูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู‡ูŽู„ูŽูƒูŽุชู’ ู„ูŽุง ุชูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนููŠ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ููŠู‡ู ุดูŽูŠู’ุฆู‹ุง ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ููŠู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุง ุจูŽุฏูŽุง ู„ูŽูƒู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุบูุฑู‘ูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒู ุฅูู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ุฌูŽุงุฑูŽุชููƒู ู‡ููŠูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ุณูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุญูŽุจู‘ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ูƒู ูŠูุฑููŠุฏู ุนูŽุงุฆูุดูŽุฉูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู„ููŠ ุฌูŽุงุฑูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู†ู’ุตูŽุงุฑู ูˆูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู†ูŽุชูŽู†ูŽุงูˆูŽุจู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุฒููˆู„ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽูŠูŽู†ู’ุฒูู„ู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ู’ุฒูู„ู ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ููŽูŠูŽุฃู’ุชููŠู†ููŠ ุจูุฎูŽุจูŽุฑู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุญู’ูŠู ูˆูŽุบูŽูŠู’ุฑูู‡ู ูˆูŽุขุชููŠู‡ู ุจูู…ูุซู’ู„ู ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู†ูŽุชูŽุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุบูŽุณู‘ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุชูู†ู’ุนูู„ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽ ู„ูุชูŽุบู’ุฒููˆูŽู†ูŽุง ููŽู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุตูŽุงุญูุจููŠ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุชูŽุงู†ููŠ ุนูุดูŽุงุกู‹ ููŽุถูŽุฑูŽุจูŽ ุจูŽุงุจููŠ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู†ูŽุงุฏูŽุงู†ููŠ ููŽุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุญูŽุฏูŽุซูŽ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑูŒ ุนูŽุธููŠู…ูŒ ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูˆูŽู…ูŽุงุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽุฌูŽุงุกูŽุชู’ ุบูŽุณู‘ูŽุงู†ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ุจูŽู„ู’ ุฃูŽุนู’ุธูŽู…ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุทู’ูˆูŽู„ู ุทูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‚ูŽ ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุณููˆู„ู ู†ูุณูŽุงุกูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฎูŽุงุจูŽุชู’ ุญูŽูู’ุตูŽุฉู ูˆูŽุฎูŽุณูุฑูŽุชู’ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุธูู†ู‘ู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ูƒูŽุงุฆูู†ู‹ุง ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจู’ุญูŽ ุดูŽุฏูŽุฏู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุซููŠูŽุงุจููŠ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ู’ุชู ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุญูŽูู’ุตูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽู‡ููŠูŽ ุชูŽุจู’ูƒููŠ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุทูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‚ูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฏู’ุฑููŠ ู‡ููˆูŽ ู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ู…ูุนู’ุชูŽุฒูู„ูŒ ูููŠ ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุดู’ุฑูุจูŽุฉู ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ู‹ุง ู„ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽุณู’ูˆูŽุฏูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฃู’ุฐูู†ู’ ู„ูุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ุชููƒูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽุตูŽู…ูŽุชูŽ ููŽุงู†ู’ุทูŽู„ูŽู‚ู’ุชู ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ู…ูู†ู’ุจูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽู‡ู ุฑูŽู‡ู’ุทูŒ ุฌูู„ููˆุณูŒ ูŠูŽุจู’ูƒููŠ ุจูŽุนู’ุถูู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽุฌูŽู„ูŽุณู’ุชู ู‚ูŽู„ููŠู„ู‹ุง ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุบูŽู„ูŽุจูŽู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฌูุฏู ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฃู’ุฐูู†ู’ ู„ูุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ุชููƒูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽุตูŽู…ูŽุชูŽ ููŽุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌู’ุชู ููŽุฌูŽู„ูŽุณู’ุชู ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ู…ูู†ู’ุจูŽุฑู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุบูŽู„ูŽุจูŽู†ููŠ ู…ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฌูุฏู ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฃู’ุฐูู†ู’ ู„ูุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฎูŽุฑูŽุฌูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑู’ุชููƒูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽุตูŽู…ูŽุชูŽ ููŽูˆูŽู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ุชู ู…ูุฏู’ุจูุฑู‹ุง ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุบูู„ูŽุงู…ู ูŠูŽุฏู’ุนููˆู†ููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุฏู’ุฎูู„ู’ ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽุฐูู†ูŽ ู„ูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ู’ุชู ููŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ู…ูุชู‘ูŽูƒูุฆูŒ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽู…ู’ู„ู ุญูŽุตููŠุฑู ุญ ูˆ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุงู‡ ูŠูŽุนู’ู‚ููˆุจู ูููŠ ุญูŽุฏููŠุซู ุตูŽุงู„ูุญู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูู…ูŽุงู„ู ุญูŽุตููŠุฑู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽุซู‘ูŽุฑูŽ ูููŠ ุฌูŽู†ู’ุจูู‡ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุทูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‚ู’ุชูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู†ูุณูŽุงุกูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฑูŽููŽุนูŽ ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณูŽู‡ู ุฅูู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽูƒู’ุจูŽุฑู ู„ูŽูˆู’ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽูƒูู†ู‘ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ุดูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูุฑูŽูŠู’ุดู ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ู†ูŽุบู’ู„ูุจู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูุณูŽุงุกูŽ ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฏูู…ู’ู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุฏููŠู†ูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽุฏู’ู†ูŽุง ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ุชูŽุบู’ู„ูุจูู‡ูู…ู’ ู†ูุณูŽุงุคูู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽุทูŽููู‚ูŽ ู†ูุณูŽุงุคูู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุชูŽุนูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ู’ู†ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ ู†ูุณูŽุงุฆูู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽุชูŽุบูŽุถู‘ูŽุจู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุงู…ู’ุฑูŽุฃูŽุชููŠ ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู‹ุง ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููŠูŽ ุชูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนูู†ููŠ ููŽุฃูŽู†ู’ูƒูŽุฑู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุชูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนูŽู†ููŠ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽุชู’ ู…ูŽุง ุชูู†ู’ูƒูุฑู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ุฃูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนูŽูƒูŽ ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽุฒู’ูˆูŽุงุฌูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู„ูŽูŠูุฑูŽุงุฌูุนู’ู†ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽุชูŽู‡ู’ุฌูุฑูู‡ู ุฅูุญู’ุฏูŽุงู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฎูŽุงุจูŽ ู…ูŽู†ู’ ููŽุนูŽู„ูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฎูŽุณูุฑูŽ ุฃูŽููŽุชูŽุฃู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุฅูุญู’ุฏูŽุงู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุบู’ุถูŽุจูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูŽุง ู„ูุบูŽุถูŽุจู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูู‡ู ููŽุฅูุฐูŽุง ู‡ููŠูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู‡ูŽู„ูŽูƒูŽุชู’ ููŽุชูŽุจูŽุณู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ููŽุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุญูŽูู’ุตูŽุฉูŽ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุบูุฑู‘ููƒู ุฅูู†ู’ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽุชู’ ุฌูŽุงุฑูŽุชููƒู ู‡ููŠูŽ ุฃูŽูˆู’ุณูŽู…ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุญูŽุจู‘ูŽ ุฅูู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู…ูู†ู’ูƒู ููŽุชูŽุจูŽุณู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูุฎู’ุฑูŽู‰ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุฃูŽุณู’ุชูŽุฃู’ู†ูุณู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ููŽุฌูŽู„ูŽุณู’ุชู ููŽุฑูŽููŽุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุฃู’ุณููŠ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽูŠู’ุชู ููŽูˆูŽุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู…ูŽุง ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ูููŠู‡ู ุดูŽูŠู’ุฆู‹ุง ูŠูŽุฑูุฏู‘ู ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุตูŽุฑูŽ ุฅูู„ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽู‡ูŽุจูŽุฉู‹ ุซูŽู„ูŽุงุซูŽุฉู‹ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุงุฏู’ุนู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠููˆูŽุณู‘ูุนูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽุชููƒูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ูˆูุณู‘ูุนูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ููŽุงุฑูุณูŽ ูˆูŽุงู„ุฑู‘ููˆู…ู ูˆูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ุจูุฏููˆู†ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽูˆูŽู‰ ุฌูŽุงู„ูุณู‹ุง ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽูููŠ ุดูŽูƒู‘ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฃููˆู„ูŽุฆููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽูˆู’ู…ูŒ ุนูุฌู‘ูู„ูŽุชู’ ู„ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุทูŽูŠู‘ูุจูŽุงุชูู‡ูู…ู’ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽูŠูŽุงุฉู ุงู„ุฏู‘ูู†ู’ูŠูŽุง ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ุงุณู’ุชูŽุบู’ููุฑู’ ู„ููŠ ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุณูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ู„ูŽุง ูŠูŽุฏู’ุฎูู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุดูŽู‡ู’ุฑู‹ุง ู…ูู†ู’ ุดูุฏู‘ูŽุฉู ู…ูŽูˆู’ุฌูุฏูŽุชูู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุงุชูŽุจูŽู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุฒู‘ูŽ ูˆูŽุฌูŽู„ู‘ูŽ.

Itย wasย narrated that ibnย 'Abbasย said:

Iย wasย eagerย toย ask ูŽ'ยญUmar about the twoย wives ofย the Prophetย (๏ทบ)ย concerningย whom Allahย said, โ€œIf youย twoย (wivesย of theย Prophet (๏ทบ) turnย inย repentance

toย Allah,ย (itย willย beย betterย for you), your heartsย areย indeedย soย inclinedย (toย opposeย what theย Prophet (๏ทบ)ย likes)"ย [at-Tahreemย 66:4], until 'Umar went for Hajj andย Iย went withย him. Whenย weย wereย partway there,ย 'Umarย turnedย asideย andย I turnedย asideย withย him, bringingย theย jugย Heย relievedย himself,then

heย cameย toย meย andย Iย pouredย water ontoย hisย hands, andย heย didย wudooโ€™. I said: O Ameer al -Mu'mineen,ย whoย areย theย twoย wivesย of theย Prophet (๏ทบ) of whom Allahย said: "If youย twoย (wivesย of theย Prophetย (๏ทบ))ย turnย inย repentanceย toย Allah, (it will beย better for you), your heartsย areย indeedย so

inclinedย (toย opposeย whatย theย Prophet (๏ทบ) likes)"ย [at-Tahreem 66:4]?ย 'Umar said: How strangeย of you,ย Oย Ibnย  'Abbas'ย [az-Zuhri said: Byย Allah, heย didย not likeย theย question, but heย didย not conceal anything.]ย Heย said:ย Theyย wereย Hafsahย andย 'A'ishah. Thenย heย startedย toย narrateย theย hadeethย and

said:ย Weย peopleย ofย Quraishย wereย aย peopleย whoย dominatedย women, but whenย weย cameย toย Madinah weย foundย aย peopleย whoย wereย dominatedย byย their women, andย our womenย startedย toย learnย from theirย women.ย Myย houseย wasย amongย Banuย Umayyahย binย Zaidย inย al-ยญ'Awali. Oneย dayย I got angryย with

myย wife,ย andย sheย arguedย withย me. I didย not likeย her toย argueย withย me, but sheย said: Do youย notย likeย meย toย argueย withย you?ย Byย Allah, theย wivesย of theย Prophet (๏ทบ) argueย withย him, andย one ofย themย willย forsakeย himย all dayย until night comes, I went andย enteredย uponย Hafsah, andย I said: Do

youย argueย withย theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ)?ย Sheย said: Yes. I said: Doesย oneย of youย forsakeย him all dayย untilย nightย comes?ย Sheย said: Yes. I said: Anyย oneย of youย whoย doesย that isย doomedย andย lost. Doesย anyย oneย ofย youย feelย assuredย that Allahย will not beย angryย withย her becauseย of theย anger of His

Messengerย (๏ทบ),ย forย thenย sheย will beย doomed?ย Doย not argueย withย theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) andย do notย askย himย forย anything. Askย meย for whatever youย want. Andย doย not beย misledย byย theย fact that yourย neighbourย isย moreย beautiful thanย youย andย moreย belovedย toย theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) -than

youย ยญย referringย toย 'A'ishah. Andย โ€˜Umar said: I hadย aย neighbour amongย theย Ansar. Weย usedย toย take turnsย toย goย downย toย theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ). Heย wouldย goย downย oneย dayย andย I wouldย goย down theย next.ย Heย wouldย bringย meย theย newsย of theย Revelationย andย other things, andย I wouldย doย likewise,

Weย wereย sayingย thatย Ghassanย wereย shoeingย their horsesย toย attackย us. Myย friendย went down, then heย cameย toย meย atย nightย andย knockedย onย myย door, thenย heย calledย out toย me. I went out toย him and heย said:ย Somethingย terribleย hasย happened! I said: What?ย Have Ghassanย come?ย Heย said:ย No, it isย moreย terribleย thanย that andย worse. Theย Prophet (๏ทบ) hasย divorced hisย wives!ย Iย said:ย Hafsahย isย doomedย andย lost! I thought that thisย wouldย happen. Thenย whenย I had prayedย Fajr,ย I gotย dressed, thenย I went downย andย enteredย uponย Hafsah, whoย wasย weeping. I said: Hasย theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ)divorcedย you?ย Sheย said: I doย not know. Heย hasย secludedย himself in thisย loft.ย Iย wentย toย aย blackย slaveย of hisย andย said: Askย for permissionย for โ€˜Umar toย enter. Heย went in, thenย heย cameย outย toย meย andย said: I mentionedย youย toย him but heย didย not sayย anything, I went away

andย cameย toย theย minbar,ย whereย I sat down. Byย it wasย aย groupย of people, someย of whom were weeping.ย Iย satย forย aย littleย while, thenย I couldย not bear it anyย longer, soย I went toย theย slaveย andย said: Askย forย permissionย forย โ€˜Umar toย enter. Heย went in, thenย heย cameย out toย meย andย said: I mentioned

youย toย himย butย heย didย notย sayย anything. I turnedย toย leave, thenย theย slaveย calledย meย andย said: Goย in, heย hasย givenย youย permission. Soย I went inย andย greetedย theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) withย salam. He wasย restingย onย aย reedย matย that hadย left marksย onย hisย side. I said: O Messenger of Allah, haveย you divorcedย yourย wives?ย Heย lookedย upย at meย andย said, โ€œNo."ย I said: Allahย Akbar! if youย hadย seenย us, Oย Messengerย ofย Allah,ย weย Quraishย wereย aย peopleย whoย dominatedย women, but whenย weย cameย toย Madinahย weย foundย aย peopleย whoย wereย dominatedย byย their women, andย our womenย startedย toย learnย from their women. I got angryย withย myย wifeย oneย day, andย sheย startedย to argueย withย me.ย Iย didย notย likeย her toย argueย withย me, but sheย said: Do youย not likeย meย toย argueย with you?ย Byย Allah,ย theย wivesย of theย Prophet (๏ทบ) argueย withย him, andย oneย of them will forsakeย him all dayย untilย nightย comes.ย Iย said: Anyย oneย of them whoย doesย that isย doomedย andย lost. Doesย oneย of themย feelย assuredย thatย Allahย will not beย angryย withย her becauseย of theย anger of Hisย Messenger (๏ทบ),thenย sheย willย beย doomed?ย Theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) smiled. I said: O Messenger of Allah, I enteredย uponย Hafsahย andย I said: Doย not beย misledย byย theย fact that your neighbour (i.e. โ€˜Aa'ishah) is moreย beautifulย thanย youย andย moreย belovedย toย theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) thanย you. Theย Messenger ofย Allahย (๏ทบ)ย smiledย again.ย I said: O Messenger of Allah, mayย I speakย toย youย freely?ย Heย said: "Yes." Soย Iย satย downย andย lookedย aroundย theย room, andย byย Allah, I didย not seeย anythingย inย it toย pleaseย the

eyeย exceptย threeย hides.ย Iย said: Prayย toย Allah, O Messenger of Allah, toย makeย lifeย prosperousย for yourย ummah,ย forย Heย hasย madeย lifeย prosperousย for theย Persiansย andย Romans, but theyย doย not worshipย Allah,ย mayย Heย be glorifiedย andย exalted.He satย upย straightย andย said:ย "Areย youย doubting. O sonย of alยญKhattab?ย Theyย areย peopleย whoseย good thingsย haveย beenย hastenedย for them inย thisย world.โ€ย I said:Prayย for forgivenessย for me, O Messenger

ofย Allah.ย Heย hadย swornย that heย wouldย not enter uponย them for aย month, becauseย heย wasย so annoyedย withย them.ย untilย Allahย rebukedย him.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 222
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 222

379

[Itsย isnadย isย da'eef becauseย Yoonusย binย Sulaim isย unknown]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ูŠููˆู†ูุณู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูู„ูŽูŠู’ู…ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู…ู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ูŠููˆู†ูุณู ุจู’ู†ู ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽูŠู’ู„ููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุดูู‡ูŽุงุจู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูุฑู’ูˆูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูุจูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ู‚ูŽุงุฑููŠู‘ู ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ู†ูŽุฒูŽู„ูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุญู’ูŠู ูŠูุณู’ู…ูŽุนู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ูˆูŽุฌู’ู‡ูู‡ู ุฏูŽูˆููŠู‘ูŒ ูƒูŽุฏูŽูˆููŠู‘ู ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุญู’ู„ู ููŽู…ูŽูƒูŽุซู’ู†ูŽุง ุณูŽุงุนูŽุฉู‹ ููŽุงุณู’ุชูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ู‚ูุจู’ู„ูŽุฉูŽ ูˆูŽุฑูŽููŽุนูŽ ูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฒูุฏู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽู†ู’ู‚ูุตู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽูƒู’ุฑูู…ู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽุนู’ุทูู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุญู’ุฑูู…ู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽุขุซูุฑู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูุคู’ุซูุฑู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽุงุฑู’ุถูŽ ุนูŽู†ู‘ูŽุง ูˆูŽุฃูŽุฑู’ุถูู†ูŽุง ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูู†ู’ุฒูู„ูŽุชู’ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู‘ูŽ ุนูŽุดู’ุฑู ุขูŠูŽุงุชู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽู‡ูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฏูŽุฎูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽู†ู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฑูŽุฃูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽุง [[[{ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽูู’ู„ูŽุญูŽ ุงู„ู’ู…ูุคู’ู…ูู†ููˆู†ูŽ }]]] ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฎูŽุชูŽู…ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนูŽุดู’ุฑูŽ.

Itย wasย narratedย thatย โ€˜Abdur-Rahmanย binย 'Abdul-ยญQari said:

l heardย 'Umar binย alยญKhattabย  say: Whenย theย Revelationย cameย downย toย theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ), aย soundย couldย beย heardย near his

faceย likeย theย buzzingย ofย bees. Weย waitedย aย while,thenย heย turnedย toย faceย theย qiblahย andย raisedย his hands,ย thenย heย said:ย "Oย Allah, giveย usย moreย (blessing) andย doย not giveย usย lessอพ honour usย andย do notย humiliateย us,ย giveย toย usย andย doย not depriveย us, giveย precedenceย toย usย andย doย not giveย others

precedenceย overย usอพย beย pleasedย withย usย andย makeย usย pleased.โ€ย Thenย heย said: "Tenย versesย have

beenย revealedย toย meอพย whoever adheresย toย thernย will enter Paradise."ย Thenย heย recitedย toย us:

"Successfulย indeedย areย theย believers"ย [alยญ Mu'minoonย 23:1] until heย completedย theย tenย verses.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 223
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 223

380

[Itsย isnadย isย Sahih,ย al-Bukhariย (1990)ย andย Muslimย (1137)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูŽูˆู’ูู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุดูŽู‡ูุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุนููŠุฏูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุจู’ู„ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุฎู’ุทูุจูŽ ุจูู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽุฐูŽุงู†ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุฅูู‚ูŽุงู…ูŽุฉู ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ุฎูŽุทูŽุจูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูŠูŽุง ุฃูŽูŠู‘ูู‡ูŽุง ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุงุณู ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู†ูŽู‡ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุตููŠูŽุงู…ู ู‡ูŽุฐูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŽูŠู’ู†ู ุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ููŽูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ู ููุทู’ุฑููƒูู…ู’ ู…ูู†ู’ ุตููŠูŽุงู…ููƒูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุนููŠุฏููƒูู…ู’ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุขุฎูŽุฑู ููŽูŠูŽูˆู’ู…ูŒ ุชูŽุฃู’ูƒูู„ููˆู†ูŽ ูููŠู‡ู ู…ูู†ู’ ู†ูุณููƒููƒูู…ู’ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ูŠูŽุนู’ู‚ููˆุจู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฅูุณู’ุญูŽุงู‚ูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽู‰ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุญู’ู…ูŽู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุฒู’ู‡ูŽุฑูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุดูŽู‡ูุฏู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุนููŠุฏูŽ ู…ูŽุนูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฏููŠุซูŽ.

Itย wasย narratedย fromย Abuย 'Ubaidย theย freedย slaveย ofย โ€˜Abdur-Rahmanย binย 'Awf

thatย heย wasย presentย onย Eid withย 'Umarย binย al Khattabย .ย Heย ['Umar] prayedย beforeย deliveringย theย khutbah,ย withย noย adhanย or Iqamah.ย Thenย heย gaveย the

khutbahย andย said:ย Oย people,ย theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ)ย forbadeย fastingย onย theseย twoย daysย (i.e.,ย theย two Eids).ย Onย theย firstย ofย themย youย breakย yourย fastย andย celebrateย yourย festival,ย andย onย theย secondย youย eatย from

theย meatย ofย yourย sacrifices.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 224
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 224

381

Aย Sahihย hadeethย itsย isnadย isย Hasan

Itย wasย narratedย thatย Sa'dย Abuย 'Ubaid,ย theย freedย slaveย ofย โ€˜Abdur-Rahmanย binย Azhar,ย said:

Iย wasย presentย at Eidย withย 'Umarย binย al Khattab...ย andย heย mentionedย aย similar hadeeth.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 225
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 225

382

[Aย Sahih hadeeth.ย Thisย isnadย isย da'eefย becauseย ofย theย weaknessย ofย 'Abdullahย binย สปUmarย alยญสปUmari]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุงููุนู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽ ุซูู…ู‘ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุนูŽู„ูู…ู’ุชู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑูŒ ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ูŽูƒูŽ ู…ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุจู‘ูŽู„ู’ุชููƒูŽ.

Itย wasย narratedย fromย Ibnย โ€˜Umarย thatย โ€˜Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ ย kissedย theย Blackย Stone,ย thenย heย said:

Iย knowย thatย youย areย onlyย a stone.ย Wereย itย notย thatย Iย sawย theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ)ย kissย you,ย Iย wouldย notย haveย kissedย you.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 226
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 226

383

[Itsย isnadย isย Sahih]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽูŠู’ู…ูŒ ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ููŠ ุณูŽูŠู‘ูŽุงุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ูˆูŽุงุฆูู„ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู‹ุง ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ู†ูŽุตู’ุฑูŽุงู†ููŠู‘ู‹ุง ูŠูู‚ูŽุงู„ู ู„ูŽู‡ู ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ุจู’ู†ู ู…ูŽุนู’ุจูŽุฏู ุฃูŽุณู’ู„ูŽู…ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽุฑูŽุงุฏูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฌูู‡ูŽุงุฏูŽ ููŽู‚ููŠู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุงุจู’ุฏูŽุฃู’ ุจูุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ู ููŽุฃูŽุชูŽู‰ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุดู’ุนูŽุฑููŠู‘ูŽ ููŽุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูู‡ูู„ู‘ูŽ ุจูุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌู‘ู ูˆูŽุงู„ู’ุนูู…ู’ุฑูŽุฉู ุฌูŽู…ููŠุนู‹ุง ููŽููŽุนูŽู„ูŽ ููŽุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽู…ูŽุง ู‡ููˆูŽ ูŠูู„ูŽุจู‘ููŠ ุฅูุฐู’ ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽ ูŠูŽุฒููŠุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ุตููˆุญูŽุงู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู†ู ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู‡ูู…ูŽุง ู„ูุตูŽุงุญูุจูู‡ู ู„ูŽู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽุถูŽู„ู‘ู ู…ูู†ู’ ุจูŽุนููŠุฑู ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ูู‡ู ููŽุณูŽู…ูุนูŽู‡ูŽุง ุงู„ุตู‘ูุจูŽูŠู‘ู ููŽูƒูŽุจูุฑูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ููŽู„ูŽู…ู‘ูŽุง ู‚ูŽุฏูู…ูŽ ุฃูŽุชูŽู‰ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ููŽุฐูŽูƒูŽุฑูŽ ุฐูŽู„ููƒูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‡ูุฏููŠุชูŽ ู„ูุณูู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ููƒูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชูู‡ู ู…ูŽุฑู‘ูŽุฉู‹ ุฃูุฎู’ุฑูŽู‰ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ูˆููู‘ูู‚ู’ุชูŽ ู„ูุณูู†ู‘ูŽุฉู ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ููƒูŽ.

ltย wasย narratedย frornย Abuย Wa'il

thatย aย manย whoย wasย aย Christianย andย wasย knownย asย as-Subayyย binย Ma'bad becameย Muslimย andย wantedย toย goย forย jihad.ย Itย wasย saidย toย him:ย Start withย Hajj.ย Soย heย wentย toย al-Ash'ari, whoย toldย him toย enter ihramย for Hajj andย โ€˜Umrahย together. Soย he didย that,ย andย whilstย heย wasย recitingย theย Talbiyah,Zaidย binย Soohanย andย Salmanย binย Rabee'ah passedย byย him,andย oneย of them saidย toย theย other. Thisย oneย isย moreย misguidedย thanย hisย family's camel.ย As-Subayyย heardย them andย that upset him. Whenย heย arrivedย heย went toย 'Umar andย toldย him

aboutย that,ย 'Umar ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ ย ย saidย toย him: Youย haveย beenย guidedย toย theย Sunnahย of your Prophet (๏ทบ). He

[theย narrator]ย said:ย Onย another occasionย I heardย him say: Youย haveย beenย helpedย toย follow the Sunnahย ofย theย Prophet.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 227
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 227

384

[ltsย isnadย isย Sahih]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู…ูุนูŽุงูˆููŠูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽู„ู’ู‚ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽุณู’ู…ูุฑู ุนูู†ู’ุฏูŽ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุจูŽูƒู’ุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ูŽุฉูŽ ูƒูŽุฐูŽุงูƒูŽ ูููŠ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ู…ูู†ู’ ุฃูŽู…ู’ุฑู ุงู„ู’ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ููŠู†ูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนูŽู‡ู.

Itย wasย narratedย fromย โ€˜Alqamahย that โ€˜Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

Theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) wasย stayingย up lateย oneย nightย withย Abuย Bakr, discussingย someย issueย of theย Muslims, andย I wasย withย him,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 228
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 228

385

[Itsย isnadย isย Sahih,ย al-ยญBukhariย (1597)ย andย Muslimย (1270)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ู…ูุนูŽุงูˆููŠูŽุฉูŽ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุงุตูู…ูŒ ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุญู’ูˆูŽู„ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุฑู’ุฌูุณูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุงู„ู’ุฃูุตูŽูŠู’ู„ูุนูŽ ูŠูŽุนู’ู†ููŠ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ูŠูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑูŽ ูˆูŽูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ู„ูŽุฃูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ููƒูŽ ูˆูŽุฃูŽุนู’ู„ูŽู…ู ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽูƒูŽ ุญูŽุฌูŽุฑูŒ ู„ูŽุง ุชูŽู†ู’ููŽุนู ูˆูŽู„ูŽุง ุชูŽุถูุฑู‘ู ูˆูŽู„ูŽูˆู’ู„ูŽุง ุฃูŽู†ู‘ููŠ ุฑูŽุฃูŽูŠู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ููƒูŽ ู„ูŽู…ู’ ุฃูู‚ูŽุจู‘ูู„ู’ูƒูŽ.

Itย wasย narratedย thatย 'Abdullahย binย Sarjisย said:

Iย saw theย baldย one, meaningย 'Umar (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡), kissย the [Black)ย Stoneย andย say:ย Iย am kissingย youย andย I know that youย areย onlyย aย stoneย andย cannot bringย any

benefitย orย wardย offย anyย harm, wereย it not that Iย saw theย Messenger of Allahย ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡ kissย you, I wouldย not haveย kissedย you,
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 229
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 229

386

[ltsย isnadย isย Sahih]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุจู’ู†ู ู†ูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู†ูŽุงููุนู ุนูŽู†ู ุงุจู’ู†ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุฃูŽูŠูŽุฑู’ู‚ูุฏู ุฃูŽุญูŽุฏูู†ูŽุง ูˆูŽู‡ููˆูŽ ุฌูู†ูุจูŒ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู†ูŽุนูŽู…ู’ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุชูŽูˆูŽุถู‘ูŽุฃูŽ.

Itย wasย narratedย fromย Ibnย 'Umar, from โ€˜Umar [that heย said:] I said:

O Messenger of Allah, can oneย ofย usย goย toย sleepย whenย heย isย junub?ย Heย said: โ€œYes, if heย doesย wudoo'.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 230
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 230

387

[ltsย isnadย isย Sahih,ย al-Bukhari (1954) andย Muslim (1100)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ู†ูู…ูŽูŠู’ุฑู ุฃูŽุฎู’ุจูŽุฑูŽู†ูŽุง ู‡ูุดูŽุงู…ูŒ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูŽุงุตูู…ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูุฐูŽุง ุฃูŽู‚ู’ุจูŽู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽูŠู’ู„ู ูˆูŽุฃูŽุฏู’ุจูŽุฑูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽุงุฑู ูˆูŽุบูŽุงุจูŽุชู’ ุงู„ุดู‘ูŽู…ู’ุณู ููŽู‚ูŽุฏู’ ุฃูŽูู’ุทูŽุฑู’ุชูŽ.

Itย wasย narratedย thatย 'Umar binย alยญ-Khattab (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡) said:

Theย Messenger of Allahย (๏ทบ) said:โ€œWhen nightย comesย andย dayย departs, andย theย sunย sets, thenย (it isย timeย to) breakย your fast."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 231
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 231

388

[Itsย twoย isnadsย areย Sahih, Muslim (817)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฃูŽุจููˆ ูƒูŽุงู…ูู„ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุจู’ุฑูŽุงู‡ููŠู…ู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽุนู’ุฏู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุดูู‡ูŽุงุจู ุญ ูˆ ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุฑูŒ ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ุฒู‘ูู‡ู’ุฑููŠู‘ู ุงู„ู’ู…ูŽุนู’ู†ูŽู‰ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ุทู‘ูููŽูŠู’ู„ู ุนูŽุงู…ูุฑู ุจู’ู†ู ูˆูŽุงุซูู„ูŽุฉูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู‘ูŽ ู†ูŽุงููุนูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ู’ุญูŽุงุฑูุซู ู„ูŽู‚ููŠูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุจู’ู†ูŽ ุงู„ู’ุฎูŽุทู‘ูŽุงุจู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุจูุนูุณู’ููŽุงู†ูŽ ูˆูŽูƒูŽุงู†ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงุณู’ุชูŽุนู’ู…ูŽู„ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽูƒู‘ูŽุฉูŽ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู„ูŽู‡ู ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู…ูŽู†ู’ ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽูู’ุชูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽู‰ ุฃูŽู‡ู’ู„ู ุงู„ู’ูˆูŽุงุฏููŠ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽูู’ุชู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ุงุจู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽุจู’ุฒูŽู‰ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ูˆูŽู…ูŽุง ุงุจู’ู†ู ุฃูŽุจู’ุฒูŽู‰ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ูŒ ู…ูู†ู’ ู…ูŽูˆูŽุงู„ููŠู†ูŽุง ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุงุณู’ุชูŽุฎู’ู„ูŽูู’ุชูŽ ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ู…ูŽูˆู’ู„ู‹ู‰ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงุฑูุฆูŒ ู„ููƒูุชูŽุงุจู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽุงู„ูู…ูŒ ุจูุงู„ู’ููŽุฑูŽุงุฆูุถู ู‚ูŽุงุถู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ุฃูŽู…ูŽุง ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ู†ูŽุจููŠู‘ูŽูƒูู…ู’ ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูŽุฏู’ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ูŽ ูŠูŽุฑู’ููŽุนู ุจูู‡ูŽุฐูŽุง ุงู„ู’ูƒูุชูŽุงุจู ุฃูŽู‚ู’ูˆูŽุงู…ู‹ุง ูˆูŽูŠูŽุถูŽุนู ุจูู‡ู ุขุฎูŽุฑููŠู†ูŽ.

It wasย narratedย that Nafiโ€™ bin 'Abdulยญ-Harithย metย 'Umarย binย al-Khattabย inย โ€˜Usfan,whenย heย wasย hisย governor inย Makkah.

Umar asked:ย whomย haveย youย appointedย asย your deputyย over theย peopleย of theย valley?ย Heย said: I have appointedย Ibnย Abzaย overย them, โ€˜Umar said: Whoย isย lbnย Abza?ย Nafiสผ said: Oneย of our freedย slaves. โ€˜Umarย said:ย Haveย youย appointedย aย freedย slaveย over them?ย Nafiโ€™ said: Heย hasย great knowledgeย of

theย Bookย ofย Allah,ย isย wellย versedย inย theย rulesย of inheritanceย (alยญ-fara'id) andย isย aย (good) qadi (judge), 'Umarย said.ย Indeedย yourย Prophet (๏ทบ) said, โ€œAllahย raisesย someย peopleย (inย status) byย meansย of this Bookย andย bringsย othersย low byย meansย of it.โ€
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 232
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 232

389

[Itsย isnadย isย daย 'eef becauseย itย isย interrupted]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ู…ูุญูŽู…ู‘ูŽุฏู ุจู’ู†ู ููุถูŽูŠู’ู„ู ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุฅูุณู’ู…ูŽุงุนููŠู„ู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูู…ูŽูŠู’ุนู ุนูŽู†ู’ ู…ูุณู’ู„ูู…ู ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุทููŠู†ู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุฃูŽุจููŠ ุงู„ู’ุจูŽุฎู’ุชูŽุฑููŠู‘ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุนูู…ูŽุฑู ู„ูุฃูŽุจููŠ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฌูŽุฑู‘ูŽุงุญู ุงุจู’ุณูุทู’ ูŠูŽุฏูŽูƒูŽ ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ุฃูุจูŽุงูŠูุนูŽูƒูŽ ููŽุฅูู†ู‘ููŠ ุณูŽู…ูุนู’ุชู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ูŠูŽู‚ููˆู„ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุชูŽ ุฃูŽู…ููŠู†ู ู‡ูŽุฐูู‡ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูู…ู‘ูŽุฉู ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุฃูŽุจููˆ ุนูุจูŽูŠู’ุฏูŽุฉูŽ ู…ูŽุง ูƒูู†ู’ุชู ู„ูุฃูŽุชูŽู‚ูŽุฏู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ูŠูŽุฏูŽูŠู’ ุฑูŽุฌูู„ู ุฃูŽู…ูŽุฑูŽู‡ู ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุคูู…ู‘ูŽู†ูŽุง ููŽุฃูŽู…ู‘ูŽู†ูŽุง ุญูŽุชู‘ูŽู‰ ู…ูŽุงุชูŽ.

Itย wasย narratedย thatย Abul-Bakhtariย said:

โ€˜Umarย saidย toย Abuย โ€˜Ubaidahย binย alยญ-Jarrah:ย Stretchย outย yourย hand soย thatย Iย mayย giveย myย allegianceย toย you,ย forย Iย heardย theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ) ย say:ย โ€œYouย areย theย trusteeย of thisย ummah.โ€ย Abuย โ€˜Ubaidahย said:ย Iย willย notย putย myselfย aheadย ofย someoneย whomย theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ)

toldย toย leadย usย inย prayerย andย heย ledย usย inย prayerย untilย heย [theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ) ]died.
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 233
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 233

390

[Itsย isnadย isย Sahih, Muslimย (1056)]
ุญูŽุฏู‘ูŽุซูŽู†ูŽุง ุนูŽุจู’ุฏู ุงู„ุฑู‘ูŽุฒู‘ูŽุงู‚ู ุฃูŽู†ู’ุจูŽุฃูŽู†ูŽุง ุณููู’ูŠูŽุงู†ู ุนูŽู†ู ุงู„ู’ุฃูŽุนู’ู…ูŽุดู ุนูŽู†ู’ ุดูŽู‚ููŠู‚ู ุจู’ู†ู ุณูŽู„ูŽู…ูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุณูŽู„ู’ู…ูŽุงู†ูŽ ุจู’ู†ู ุฑูŽุจููŠุนูŽุฉูŽ ุนูŽู†ู’ ุนูู…ูŽุฑูŽ ุฑูŽุถููŠูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู†ู’ู‡ู ู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ู‚ูŽุณูŽู…ูŽ ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ู ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ู‚ูุณู’ู…ูŽุฉู‹ ููŽู‚ูู„ู’ุชู ูŠูŽุง ุฑูŽุณููˆู„ูŽ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ู„ูŽุบูŽูŠู’ุฑู ู‡ูŽุคูู„ูŽุงุกู ุฃูŽุญูŽู‚ู‘ู ู…ูู†ู’ู‡ูู…ู’ ููŽู‚ูŽุงู„ูŽ ุงู„ู†ู‘ูŽุจููŠู‘ู ุตูŽู„ู‘ูŽู‰ ุงู„ู„ู‘ูŽู‡ู ุนูŽู„ูŽูŠู’ู‡ู ูˆูŽุณูŽู„ู‘ูŽู…ูŽ ุฅูู†ู‘ูŽู‡ูู…ู’ ุฎูŽูŠู‘ูŽุฑููˆู†ููŠ ุจูŽูŠู’ู†ูŽ ุฃูŽู†ู’ ูŠูŽุณู’ุฃูŽู„ููˆู†ููŠ ุจูุงู„ู’ููุญู’ุดู ุฃูŽูˆู’ ูŠูุจูŽุฎู‘ูู„ููˆู†ููŠ ููŽู„ูŽุณู’ุชู ุจูุจูŽุงุฎูู„ู.

Itย wasย narratedย thatย 'Umarย binย al-ยญKhattabย (ุฑุถูŠ ุงู„ู„ู‡ ุนู†ู‡)ย said:

Theย Messengerย ofย Allahย (๏ทบ)ย sharedย outย (some wealth)ย andย Iย said.ย Byย Allah,ย Oย Messengerย ofย Allah,ย othersย deservedย toย haveย itย moreย thanย theseย people.ย He

said:ย โ€œTheyย gaveย meย theย choiceย ofย havingย themย askย importunatelyย orย regardย meย asย aย miser,ย andย Iย amย notย a

miser."
Reference: Musnad Ahmad 234
Arabic/English book : Book 2, Hadith 234

Reading Settings

English

System

Select Arabic Font

Kfgq Hafs

Select Translation Font

Kalpurush

22
17

General Settings

Show Arabic

Show Translation

Show Reference

Hadith Split View


Be a Part of this Sadaqa Jariah

Help us gift a modern, ad-free Islamic application for the Muslim Ummah. Your donation will be recorded as Sadaqah Jariyah in your book of deeds, In Sha Allah.

Support